10125 lines
442 KiB
Plaintext
10125 lines
442 KiB
Plaintext
|
[pg/etext93/gmars11.txt]
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE GODS OF MARS was first published in ALL-STORY MAGAZINE
|
||
|
as a five-part serial, January through May 1913.
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE GODS OF MARS
|
||
|
|
||
|
Edgar Rice Burroughs
|
||
|
|
||
|
FOREWORD
|
||
|
|
||
|
TWELVE years had passed since I had laid the body of my
|
||
|
great-uncle, Captain John Carter, of Virginia, away from
|
||
|
the sight of men in that strange mausoleum in the old
|
||
|
cemetery at Richmond.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Often had I pondered on the odd instructions he had left me
|
||
|
governing the construction of his mighty tomb, and especially
|
||
|
those parts which directed that he be laid in an OPEN casket
|
||
|
and that the ponderous mechanism which controlled the bolts
|
||
|
of the vault's huge door be accessible ONLY FROM THE INSIDE.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Twelve years had passed since I had read the remarkable
|
||
|
manuscript of this remarkable man; this man who remembered
|
||
|
no childhood and who could not even offer a vague guess as
|
||
|
to his age; who was always young and yet who had dandled my
|
||
|
grandfather's great-grandfather upon his knee; this man who
|
||
|
had spent ten years upon the planet Mars; who had fought for
|
||
|
the green men of Barsoom and fought against them; who had
|
||
|
fought for and against the red men and who had won the ever
|
||
|
beautiful Dejah Thoris, Princess of Helium, for his wife, and
|
||
|
for nearly ten years had been a prince of the house of Tardos
|
||
|
Mors, Jeddak of Helium.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Twelve years had passed since his body had been found upon
|
||
|
the bluff before his cottage overlooking the Hudson, and oft-
|
||
|
times during these long years I had wondered if John Carter
|
||
|
were really dead, or if he again roamed the dead sea bottoms
|
||
|
of that dying planet; if he had returned to Barsoom to find that
|
||
|
he had opened the frowning portals of the mighty atmosphere plant in
|
||
|
time to save the countless millions who were dying of asphyxiation
|
||
|
on that far-gone day that had seen him hurtled ruthlessly through
|
||
|
forty-eight million miles of space back to Earth once more.
|
||
|
I had wondered if he had found his black-haired Princess and the
|
||
|
slender son he had dreamed was with her in the royal gardens of
|
||
|
Tardos Mors, awaiting his return.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Or, had he found that he had been too late, and thus gone back to a
|
||
|
living death upon a dead world? Or was he really dead after all,
|
||
|
never to return either to his mother Earth or his beloved Mars?
|
||
|
|
||
|
Thus was I lost in useless speculation one sultry August
|
||
|
evening when old Ben, my body servant, handed me a telegram.
|
||
|
Tearing it open I read:
|
||
|
|
||
|
'Meet me to-morrow hotel Raleigh Richmond.
|
||
|
|
||
|
'JOHN CARTER'
|
||
|
|
||
|
Early the next morning I took the first train for Richmond
|
||
|
and within two hours was being ushered into the room occupied
|
||
|
by John Carter.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I entered he rose to greet me, his old-time cordial
|
||
|
smile of welcome lighting his handsome face. Apparently he
|
||
|
had not aged a minute, but was still the straight, clean-limbed
|
||
|
fighting-man of thirty. His keen grey eyes were undimmed, and
|
||
|
the only lines upon his face were the lines of iron character and
|
||
|
determination that always had been there since first I remembered him,
|
||
|
nearly thirty-five years before.
|
||
|
|
||
|
'Well, nephew,' he greeted me, 'do you feel as though you
|
||
|
were seeing a ghost, or suffering from the effects of too many
|
||
|
of Uncle Ben's juleps?'
|
||
|
|
||
|
'Juleps, I reckon,' I replied, 'for I certainly feel mighty good;
|
||
|
but maybe it's just the sight of you again that affects me. You
|
||
|
have been back to Mars? Tell me. And Dejah Thoris? You
|
||
|
found her well and awaiting you?'
|
||
|
|
||
|
'Yes, I have been to Barsoom again, and--but it's a long
|
||
|
story, too long to tell in the limited time I have before I must
|
||
|
return. I have learned the secret, nephew, and I may traverse
|
||
|
the trackless void at my will, coming and going between the
|
||
|
countless planets as I list; but my heart is always in Barsoom,
|
||
|
and while it is there in the keeping of my Martian Princess, I
|
||
|
doubt that I shall ever again leave the dying world that is my life.
|
||
|
|
||
|
'I have come now because my affection for you prompted me
|
||
|
to see you once more before you pass over for ever into that
|
||
|
other life that I shall never know, and which though I have
|
||
|
died thrice and shall die again to-night, as you know death, I
|
||
|
am as unable to fathom as are you.
|
||
|
|
||
|
'Even the wise and mysterious therns of Barsoom, that
|
||
|
ancient cult which for countless ages has been credited with
|
||
|
holding the secret of life and death in their impregnable
|
||
|
fastnesses upon the hither slopes of the Mountains of Otz, are as
|
||
|
ignorant as we. I have proved it, though I near lost my life in
|
||
|
the doing of it; but you shall read it all in the notes I have been
|
||
|
making during the last three months that I have been back upon Earth.'
|
||
|
|
||
|
He patted a swelling portfolio that lay on the table at his elbow.
|
||
|
|
||
|
'I know that you are interested and that you believe, and I
|
||
|
know that the world, too, is interested, though they will not
|
||
|
believe for many years; yes, for many ages, since they cannot
|
||
|
understand. Earth men have not yet progressed to a point where
|
||
|
they can comprehend the things that I have written in those notes.
|
||
|
|
||
|
'Give them what you wish of it, what you think will not
|
||
|
harm them, but do not feel aggrieved if they laugh at you.'
|
||
|
|
||
|
That night I walked down to the cemetery with him. At the
|
||
|
door of his vault he turned and pressed my hand.
|
||
|
|
||
|
'Good-bye, nephew,' he said. 'I may never see you again,
|
||
|
for I doubt that I can ever bring myself to leave my wife and
|
||
|
boy while they live, and the span of life upon Barsoom is often
|
||
|
more than a thousand years.'
|
||
|
|
||
|
He entered the vault. The great door swung slowly to. The
|
||
|
ponderous bolts grated into place. The lock clicked. I have
|
||
|
never seen Captain John Carter, of Virginia, since.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But here is the story of his return to Mars on that other occasion,
|
||
|
as I have gleaned it from the great mass of notes which he left
|
||
|
for me upon the table of his room in the hotel at Richmond.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There is much which I have left out; much which I have not
|
||
|
dared to tell; but you will find the story of his second search
|
||
|
for Dejah Thoris, Princess of Helium, even more remarkable
|
||
|
than was his first manuscript which I gave to an unbelieving
|
||
|
world a short time since and through which we followed the
|
||
|
fighting Virginian across dead sea bottoms under the moons of Mars.
|
||
|
|
||
|
E. R. B.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CONTENTS
|
||
|
|
||
|
Contents
|
||
|
|
||
|
I. The Plant Men
|
||
|
|
||
|
II. A Forest Battle
|
||
|
|
||
|
III. The Chamber of Mystery
|
||
|
|
||
|
IV. Thuvia
|
||
|
|
||
|
V. Corridors of Peril
|
||
|
|
||
|
VI. The Black Pirates of Barsoom
|
||
|
|
||
|
VII. A Fair Goddess
|
||
|
|
||
|
VIII. The Depths of Omean
|
||
|
|
||
|
IX. Issus, Goddess of Life Eternal
|
||
|
|
||
|
X. The Prison Isle of Shador
|
||
|
|
||
|
XI. When Hell Broke Loose
|
||
|
|
||
|
XII. Doomed to Die
|
||
|
|
||
|
XIII. A Break for Liberty
|
||
|
|
||
|
XIV. The Eyes in the Dark
|
||
|
|
||
|
XV. Flight and Pursuit
|
||
|
|
||
|
XVI. Under Arrest
|
||
|
|
||
|
XVII. The Death Sentence
|
||
|
|
||
|
XVIII. Sola's Story
|
||
|
|
||
|
XIX. Black Despair
|
||
|
|
||
|
XX. The Air Battle
|
||
|
|
||
|
XXI. Through Flood and Flame
|
||
|
|
||
|
XXII. Victory and Defeat
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE GODS OF MARS
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER I
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE PLANT MEN
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I stood upon the bluff before my cottage on that clear
|
||
|
cold night in the early part of March, 1886, the noble Hudson
|
||
|
flowing like the grey and silent spectre of a dead river
|
||
|
below me, I felt again the strange, compelling influence of
|
||
|
the mighty god of war, my beloved Mars, which for ten long
|
||
|
and lonesome years I had implored with outstretched arms
|
||
|
to carry me back to my lost love.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Not since that other March night in 1866, when I had
|
||
|
stood without that Arizona cave in which my still and lifeless
|
||
|
body lay wrapped in the similitude of earthly death had I felt
|
||
|
the irresistible attraction of the god of my profession.
|
||
|
|
||
|
With arms outstretched toward the red eye of the great
|
||
|
star I stood praying for a return of that strange power which
|
||
|
twice had drawn me through the immensity of space, praying
|
||
|
as I had prayed on a thousand nights before during the long
|
||
|
ten years that I had waited and hoped.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Suddenly a qualm of nausea swept over me, my senses
|
||
|
swam, my knees gave beneath me and I pitched headlong
|
||
|
to the ground upon the very verge of the dizzy bluff.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Instantly my brain cleared and there swept back across
|
||
|
the threshold of my memory the vivid picture of the horrors
|
||
|
of that ghostly Arizona cave; again, as on that far-gone night,
|
||
|
my muscles refused to respond to my will and again, as
|
||
|
though even here upon the banks of the placid Hudson, I
|
||
|
could hear the awful moans and rustling of the fearsome
|
||
|
thing which had lurked and threatened me from the dark
|
||
|
recesses of the cave, I made the same mighty and superhuman
|
||
|
effort to break the bonds of the strange anaesthesia which
|
||
|
held me, and again came the sharp click as of the sudden
|
||
|
parting of a taut wire, and I stood naked and free beside
|
||
|
the staring, lifeless thing that had so recently pulsed with
|
||
|
the warm, red life-blood of John Carter.
|
||
|
|
||
|
With scarcely a parting glance I turned my eyes again toward
|
||
|
Mars, lifted my hands toward his lurid rays, and waited.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Nor did I have long to wait; for scarce had I turned ere I
|
||
|
shot with the rapidity of thought into the awful void before
|
||
|
me. There was the same instant of unthinkable cold and utter
|
||
|
darkness that I had experienced twenty years before, and
|
||
|
then I opened my eyes in another world, beneath the burning
|
||
|
rays of a hot sun, which beat through a tiny opening in the
|
||
|
dome of the mighty forest in which I lay.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The scene that met my eyes was so un-Martian that my
|
||
|
heart sprang to my throat as the sudden fear swept through
|
||
|
me that I had been aimlessly tossed upon some strange planet
|
||
|
by a cruel fate.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Why not? What guide had I through the trackless waste of
|
||
|
interplanetary space? What assurance that I might not as
|
||
|
well be hurtled to some far-distant star of another
|
||
|
solar system, as to Mars?
|
||
|
|
||
|
I lay upon a close-cropped sward of red grasslike vegetation,
|
||
|
and about me stretched a grove of strange and beautiful trees,
|
||
|
covered with huge and gorgeous blossoms and filled with brilliant,
|
||
|
voiceless birds. I call them birds since they were winged, but
|
||
|
mortal eye ne'er rested on such odd, unearthly shapes.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The vegetation was similar to that which covers the lawns
|
||
|
of the red Martians of the great waterways, but the trees
|
||
|
and birds were unlike anything that I had ever seen upon
|
||
|
Mars, and then through the further trees I could see that
|
||
|
most un-Martian of all sights--an open sea, its blue waters
|
||
|
shimmering beneath the brazen sun.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I rose to investigate further I experienced the same
|
||
|
ridiculous catastrophe that had met my first attempt to walk
|
||
|
under Martian conditions. The lesser attraction of this smaller
|
||
|
planet and the reduced air pressure of its greatly rarefied
|
||
|
atmosphere, afforded so little resistance to my earthly muscles
|
||
|
that the ordinary exertion of the mere act of rising sent
|
||
|
me several feet into the air and precipitated me upon my
|
||
|
face in the soft and brilliant grass of this strange world.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This experience, however, gave me some slightly increased
|
||
|
assurance that, after all, I might indeed be in some, to me,
|
||
|
unknown corner of Mars, and this was very possible since
|
||
|
during my ten years' residence upon the planet I had
|
||
|
explored but a comparatively tiny area of its vast expanse.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I arose again, laughing at my forgetfulness, and soon had
|
||
|
mastered once more the art of attuning my earthly sinews
|
||
|
to these changed conditions.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I walked slowly down the imperceptible slope toward
|
||
|
the sea I could not help but note the park-like appearance of
|
||
|
the sward and trees. The grass was as close-cropped and
|
||
|
carpet-like as some old English lawn and the trees themselves
|
||
|
showed evidence of careful pruning to a uniform height of
|
||
|
about fifteen feet from the ground, so that as one turned his
|
||
|
glance in any direction the forest had the appearance at a
|
||
|
little distance of a vast, high-ceiled chamber.
|
||
|
|
||
|
All these evidences of careful and systematic cultivation
|
||
|
convinced me that I had been fortunate enough to make my
|
||
|
entry into Mars on this second occasion through the domain
|
||
|
of a civilized people and that when I should find them I
|
||
|
would be accorded the courtesy and protection that my rank
|
||
|
as a Prince of the house of Tardos Mors entitled me to.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The trees of the forest attracted my deep admiration as I
|
||
|
proceeded toward the sea. Their great stems, some of them
|
||
|
fully a hundred feet in diameter, attested their prodigious
|
||
|
height, which I could only guess at, since at no point could
|
||
|
I penetrate their dense foliage above me to more than sixty
|
||
|
or eighty feet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As far aloft as I could see the stems and branches and
|
||
|
twigs were as smooth and as highly polished as the newest of
|
||
|
American-made pianos. The wood of some of the trees was
|
||
|
as black as ebony, while their nearest neighbours might
|
||
|
perhaps gleam in the subdued light of the forest as clear
|
||
|
and white as the finest china, or, again, they were azure,
|
||
|
scarlet, yellow, or deepest purple.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And in the same way was the foliage as gay and variegated
|
||
|
as the stems, while the blooms that clustered thick upon
|
||
|
them may not be described in any earthly tongue, and indeed
|
||
|
might challenge the language of the gods.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I neared the confines of the forest I beheld before me
|
||
|
and between the grove and the open sea, a broad expanse
|
||
|
of meadow land, and as I was about to emerge from the
|
||
|
shadows of the trees a sight met my eyes that banished
|
||
|
all romantic and poetic reflection upon the beauties of
|
||
|
the strange landscape.
|
||
|
|
||
|
To my left the sea extended as far as the eye could reach,
|
||
|
before me only a vague, dim line indicated its further shore,
|
||
|
while at my right a mighty river, broad, placid, and majestic,
|
||
|
flowed between scarlet banks to empty into the quiet sea before me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At a little distance up the river rose mighty perpendicular bluffs,
|
||
|
from the very base of which the great river seemed to rise.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But it was not these inspiring and magnificent evidences of
|
||
|
Nature's grandeur that took my immediate attention from the
|
||
|
beauties of the forest. It was the sight of a score of figures
|
||
|
moving slowly about the meadow near the bank of the mighty river.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Odd, grotesque shapes they were; unlike anything that I had
|
||
|
ever seen upon Mars, and yet, at a distance, most manlike
|
||
|
in appearance. The larger specimens appeared to be about
|
||
|
ten or twelve feet in height when they stood erect, and
|
||
|
to be proportioned as to torso and lower extremities
|
||
|
precisely as is earthly man.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Their arms, however, were very short, and from where I stood
|
||
|
seemed as though fashioned much after the manner of an
|
||
|
elephant's trunk, in that they moved in sinuous and snakelike
|
||
|
undulations, as though entirely without bony structure, or if
|
||
|
there were bones it seemed that they must be vertebral in nature.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I watched them from behind the stem of a huge tree,
|
||
|
one of the creatures moved slowly in my direction, engaged
|
||
|
in the occupation that seemed to be the principal business of
|
||
|
each of them, and which consisted in running their oddly
|
||
|
shaped hands over the surface of the sward, for what purpose
|
||
|
I could not determine.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As he approached quite close to me I obtained an excellent
|
||
|
view of him, and though I was later to become better
|
||
|
acquainted with his kind, I may say that that single cursory
|
||
|
examination of this awful travesty on Nature would have
|
||
|
proved quite sufficient to my desires had I been a free agent.
|
||
|
The fastest flier of the Heliumetic Navy could not quickly
|
||
|
enough have carried me far from this hideous creature.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Its hairless body was a strange and ghoulish blue, except
|
||
|
for a broad band of white which encircled its protruding,
|
||
|
single eye: an eye that was all dead white--pupil, iris,
|
||
|
and ball.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Its nose was a ragged, inflamed, circular hole in the centre
|
||
|
of its blank face; a hole that resembled more closely nothing
|
||
|
that I could think of other than a fresh bullet wound which
|
||
|
has not yet commenced to bleed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Below this repulsive orifice the face was quite blank to
|
||
|
the chin, for the thing had no mouth that I could discover.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The head, with the exception of the face, was covered by a tangled
|
||
|
mass of jet-black hair some eight or ten inches in length. Each
|
||
|
hair was about the bigness of a large angleworm, and as the thing
|
||
|
moved the muscles of its scalp this awful head-covering seemed
|
||
|
to writhe and wriggle and crawl about the fearsome face as though
|
||
|
indeed each separate hair was endowed with independent life.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The body and the legs were as symmetrically human as Nature
|
||
|
could have fashioned them, and the feet, too, were human
|
||
|
in shape, but of monstrous proportions. From heel to toe
|
||
|
they were fully three feet long, and very flat and very broad.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As it came quite close to me I discovered that its strange
|
||
|
movements, running its odd hands over the surface of the
|
||
|
turf, were the result of its peculiar method of feeding, which
|
||
|
consists in cropping off the tender vegetation with its
|
||
|
razorlike talons and sucking it up from its two mouths, which
|
||
|
lie one in the palm of each hand, through its arm-like throats.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In addition to the features which I have already described,
|
||
|
the beast was equipped with a massive tail about six feet in
|
||
|
length, quite round where it joined the body, but tapering to
|
||
|
a flat, thin blade toward the end, which trailed at right
|
||
|
angles to the ground.
|
||
|
|
||
|
By far the most remarkable feature of this most remarkable
|
||
|
creature, however, were the two tiny replicas of it, each
|
||
|
about six inches in length, which dangled, one on either side,
|
||
|
from its armpits. They were suspended by a small stem which
|
||
|
seemed to grow from the exact tops of their heads to where
|
||
|
it connected them with the body of the adult.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Whether they were the young, or merely portions of a
|
||
|
composite creature, I did not know.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I had been scrutinizing this weird monstrosity the
|
||
|
balance of the herd had fed quite close to me and I now saw
|
||
|
that while many had the smaller specimens dangling from
|
||
|
them, not all were thus equipped, and I further noted that
|
||
|
the little ones varied in size from what appeared to be but
|
||
|
tiny unopened buds an inch in diameter through various
|
||
|
stages of development to the full-fledged and perfectly
|
||
|
formed creature of ten to twelve inches in length.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Feeding with the herd were many of the little fellows not
|
||
|
much larger than those which remained attached to their
|
||
|
parents, and from the young of that size the herd graded up
|
||
|
to the immense adults.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Fearsome-looking as they were, I did not know whether to
|
||
|
fear them or not, for they did not seem to be particularly
|
||
|
well equipped for fighting, and I was on the point of stepping
|
||
|
from my hiding-place and revealing myself to them to
|
||
|
note the effect upon them of the sight of a man when my
|
||
|
rash resolve was, fortunately for me, nipped in the bud by
|
||
|
a strange shrieking wail, which seemed to come from the
|
||
|
direction of the bluffs at my right.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Naked and unarmed, as I was, my end would have been
|
||
|
both speedy and horrible at the hands of these cruel creatures
|
||
|
had I had time to put my resolve into execution, but at the
|
||
|
moment of the shriek each member of the herd turned in the
|
||
|
direction from which the sound seemed to come, and at
|
||
|
the same instant every particular snake-like hair upon their
|
||
|
heads rose stiffly perpendicular as if each had been a sentient
|
||
|
organism looking or listening for the source or meaning of the
|
||
|
wail. And indeed the latter proved to be the truth, for this
|
||
|
strange growth upon the craniums of the plant men of Barsoom
|
||
|
represents the thousand ears of these hideous creatures,
|
||
|
the last remnant of the strange race which sprang from the
|
||
|
original Tree of Life.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Instantly every eye turned toward one member of the
|
||
|
herd, a large fellow who evidently was the leader. A strange
|
||
|
purring sound issued from the mouth in the palm of one of
|
||
|
his hands, and at the same time he started rapidly toward the
|
||
|
bluff, followed by the entire herd.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Their speed and method of locomotion were both remarkable,
|
||
|
springing as they did in great leaps of twenty or thirty
|
||
|
feet, much after the manner of a kangaroo.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They were rapidly disappearing when it occurred to me
|
||
|
to follow them, and so, hurling caution to the winds, I sprang
|
||
|
across the meadow in their wake with leaps and bounds even
|
||
|
more prodigious than their own, for the muscles of an
|
||
|
athletic Earth man produce remarkable results when pitted
|
||
|
against the lesser gravity and air pressure of Mars.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Their way led directly towards the apparent source of the
|
||
|
river at the base of the cliffs, and as I neared this point I
|
||
|
found the meadow dotted with huge boulders that the ravages
|
||
|
of time had evidently dislodged from the towering crags above.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For this reason I came quite close to the cause of the
|
||
|
disturbance before the scene broke upon my horrified gaze.
|
||
|
As I topped a great boulder I saw the herd of plant men
|
||
|
surrounding a little group of perhaps five or six green men
|
||
|
and women of Barsoom.
|
||
|
|
||
|
That I was indeed upon Mars I now had no doubt, for
|
||
|
here were members of the wild hordes that people the dead
|
||
|
sea bottoms and deserted cities of that dying planet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Here were the great males towering in all the majesty of
|
||
|
their imposing height; here were the gleaming white tusks
|
||
|
protruding from their massive lower jaws to a point near the
|
||
|
centre of their foreheads, the laterally placed, protruding
|
||
|
eyes with which they could look forward or backward, or to
|
||
|
either side without turning their heads, here the strange
|
||
|
antennae-like ears rising from the tops of their foreheads;
|
||
|
and the additional pair of arms extending from midway between
|
||
|
the shoulders and the hips.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Even without the glossy green hide and the metal ornaments
|
||
|
which denoted the tribes to which they belonged, I would
|
||
|
have known them on the instant for what they were,
|
||
|
for where else in all the universe is their like duplicated?
|
||
|
|
||
|
There were two men and four females in the party and
|
||
|
their ornaments denoted them as members of different
|
||
|
hordes, a fact which tended to puzzle me infinitely, since
|
||
|
the various hordes of green men of Barsoom are eternally at
|
||
|
deadly war with one another, and never, except on that single
|
||
|
historic instance when the great Tars Tarkas of Thark gathered
|
||
|
a hundred and fifty thousand green warriors from several
|
||
|
hordes to march upon the doomed city of Zodanga to rescue
|
||
|
Dejah Thoris, Princess of Helium, from the clutches of
|
||
|
Than Kosis, had I seen green Martians of different hordes
|
||
|
associated in other than mortal combat.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But now they stood back to back, facing, in wide-eyed amazement,
|
||
|
the very evidently hostile demonstrations of a common enemy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Both men and women were armed with long-swords and
|
||
|
daggers, but no firearms were in evidence, else it had been
|
||
|
short shrift for the gruesome plant men of Barsoom.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Presently the leader of the plant men charged the little
|
||
|
party, and his method of attack was as remarkable as it was
|
||
|
effective, and by its very strangeness was the more potent,
|
||
|
since in the science of the green warriors there was no
|
||
|
defence for this singular manner of attack, the like of which
|
||
|
it soon was evident to me they were as unfamiliar with as
|
||
|
they were with the monstrosities which confronted them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The plant man charged to within a dozen feet of the party
|
||
|
and then, with a bound, rose as though to pass directly above
|
||
|
their heads. His powerful tail was raised high to one side, and
|
||
|
as he passed close above them he brought it down in one terrific
|
||
|
sweep that crushed a green warrior's skull as though it had been
|
||
|
an eggshell.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The balance of the frightful herd was now circling rapidly
|
||
|
and with bewildering speed about the little knot of victims.
|
||
|
Their prodigious bounds and the shrill, screeching purr of
|
||
|
their uncanny mouths were well calculated to confuse and
|
||
|
terrorize their prey, so that as two of them leaped
|
||
|
simultaneously from either side, the mighty sweep of
|
||
|
those awful tails met with no resistance and two more
|
||
|
green Martians went down to an ignoble death.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There were now but one warrior and two females left,
|
||
|
and it seemed that it could be but a matter of seconds
|
||
|
ere these, also, lay dead upon the scarlet sward.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But as two more of the plant men charged, the warrior,
|
||
|
who was now prepared by the experiences of the past few
|
||
|
minutes, swung his mighty long-sword aloft and met the
|
||
|
hurtling bulk with a clean cut that clove one of the
|
||
|
plant men from chin to groin.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The other, however, dealt a single blow with his cruel tail
|
||
|
that laid both of the females crushed corpses upon the ground.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As the green warrior saw the last of his companions go
|
||
|
down and at the same time perceived that the entire herd
|
||
|
was charging him in a body, he rushed boldly to meet them,
|
||
|
swinging his long-sword in the terrific manner that I had so
|
||
|
often seen the men of his kind wield it in their ferocious and
|
||
|
almost continual warfare among their own race.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Cutting and hewing to right and left, he laid an open path
|
||
|
straight through the advancing plant men, and then commenced
|
||
|
a mad race for the forest, in the shelter of which
|
||
|
he evidently hoped that he might find a haven of refuge.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He had turned for that portion of the forest which abutted
|
||
|
on the cliffs, and thus the mad race was taking the entire
|
||
|
party farther and farther from the boulder where I lay concealed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I had watched the noble fight which the great warrior
|
||
|
had put up against such enormous odds my heart had swelled
|
||
|
in admiration for him, and acting as I am wont to do, more
|
||
|
upon impulse than after mature deliberation, I instantly
|
||
|
sprang from my sheltering rock and bounded quickly toward
|
||
|
the bodies of the dead green Martians, a well-defined plan
|
||
|
of action already formed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Half a dozen great leaps brought me to the spot, and another
|
||
|
instant saw me again in my stride in quick pursuit of the
|
||
|
hideous monsters that were rapidly gaining on the fleeing
|
||
|
warrior, but this time I grasped a mighty long-sword in my
|
||
|
hand and in my heart was the old blood lust of the fighting
|
||
|
man, and a red mist swam before my eyes and I felt my lips
|
||
|
respond to my heart in the old smile that has ever marked
|
||
|
me in the midst of the joy of battle.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Swift as I was I was none too soon, for the green warrior
|
||
|
had been overtaken ere he had made half the distance to the
|
||
|
forest, and now he stood with his back to a boulder, while
|
||
|
the herd, temporarily balked, hissed and screeched about him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
With their single eyes in the centre of their heads and every
|
||
|
eye turned upon their prey, they did not note my soundless
|
||
|
approach, so that I was upon them with my great long-sword
|
||
|
and four of them lay dead ere they knew that I was among them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For an instant they recoiled before my terrific onslaught,
|
||
|
and in that instant the green warrior rose to the occasion
|
||
|
and, springing to my side, laid to the right and left of him as
|
||
|
I had never seen but one other warrior do, with great circling
|
||
|
strokes that formed a figure eight about him and that never
|
||
|
stopped until none stood living to oppose him, his keen blade
|
||
|
passing through flesh and bone and metal as though each
|
||
|
had been alike thin air.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As we bent to the slaughter, far above us rose that shrill,
|
||
|
weird cry which I had heard once before, and which had
|
||
|
called the herd to the attack upon their victims. Again and
|
||
|
again it rose, but we were too much engaged with the fierce
|
||
|
and powerful creatures about us to attempt to search out
|
||
|
even with our eyes the author of the horrid notes.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Great tails lashed in frenzied anger about us, razor-like
|
||
|
talons cut our limbs and bodies, and a green and sticky
|
||
|
syrup, such as oozes from a crushed caterpillar, smeared us
|
||
|
from head to foot, for every cut and thrust of our longswords
|
||
|
brought spurts of this stuff upon us from the severed arteries
|
||
|
of the plant men, through which it courses in its sluggish
|
||
|
viscidity in lieu of blood.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Once I felt the great weight of one of the monsters upon
|
||
|
my back and as keen talons sank into my flesh I experienced
|
||
|
the frightful sensation of moist lips sucking the lifeblood from
|
||
|
the wounds to which the claws still clung.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was very much engaged with a ferocious fellow who
|
||
|
was endeavouring to reach my throat from in front, while
|
||
|
two more, one on either side, were lashing viciously at me
|
||
|
with their tails.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The green warrior was much put to it to hold his own,
|
||
|
and I felt that the unequal struggle could last but a
|
||
|
moment longer when the huge fellow discovered my plight,
|
||
|
and tearing himself from those that surrounded him, he raked
|
||
|
the assailant from my back with a single sweep of his blade,
|
||
|
and thus relieved I had little difficulty with the others.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Once together, we stood almost back to back against the
|
||
|
great boulder, and thus the creatures were prevented from
|
||
|
soaring above us to deliver their deadly blows, and as we
|
||
|
were easily their match while they remained upon the
|
||
|
ground, we were making great headway in dispatching what
|
||
|
remained of them when our attention was again attracted by
|
||
|
the shrill wail of the caller above our heads.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This time I glanced up, and far above us upon a little
|
||
|
natural balcony on the face of the cliff stood a strange figure
|
||
|
of a man shrieking out his shrill signal, the while he waved
|
||
|
one hand in the direction of the river's mouth as though
|
||
|
beckoning to some one there, and with the other pointed and
|
||
|
gesticulated toward us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A glance in the direction toward which he was looking
|
||
|
was sufficient to apprise me of his aims and at the same time
|
||
|
to fill me with the dread of dire apprehension, for, streaming
|
||
|
in from all directions across the meadow, from out of the
|
||
|
forest, and from the far distance of the flat land across the
|
||
|
river, I could see converging upon us a hundred different
|
||
|
lines of wildly leaping creatures such as we were now
|
||
|
engaged with, and with them some strange new monsters which
|
||
|
ran with great swiftness, now erect and now upon all fours.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It will be a great death," I said to my companion. "Look!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
As he shot a quick glance in the direction I indicated he smiled.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We may at least die fighting and as great warriors should,
|
||
|
John Carter," he replied.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We had just finished the last of our immediate antagonists
|
||
|
as he spoke, and I turned in surprised wonderment at the
|
||
|
sound of my name.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And there before my astonished eyes I beheld the greatest
|
||
|
of the green men of Barsoom; their shrewdest statesman,
|
||
|
their mightiest general, my great and good friend,
|
||
|
Tars Tarkas, Jeddak of Thark.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER II
|
||
|
|
||
|
A FOREST BATTLE
|
||
|
|
||
|
Tars Tarkas and I found no time for an exchange of experiences
|
||
|
as we stood there before the great boulder surrounded by the
|
||
|
corpses of our grotesque assailants, for from all directions
|
||
|
down the broad valley was streaming a perfect torrent of
|
||
|
terrifying creatures in response to the weird call of the
|
||
|
strange figure far above us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come," cried Tars Tarkas, "we must make for the cliffs.
|
||
|
There lies our only hope of even temporary escape; there
|
||
|
we may find a cave or a narrow ledge which two may defend
|
||
|
for ever against this motley, unarmed horde."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Together we raced across the scarlet sward, I timing my
|
||
|
speed that I might not outdistance my slower companion. We
|
||
|
had, perhaps, three hundred yards to cover between our
|
||
|
boulder and the cliffs, and then to search out a suitable
|
||
|
shelter for our stand against the terrifying things that were
|
||
|
pursuing us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They were rapidly overhauling us when Tars Tarkas cried
|
||
|
to me to hasten ahead and discover, if possible, the sanctuary
|
||
|
we sought. The suggestion was a good one, for thus many
|
||
|
valuable minutes might be saved to us, and, throwing
|
||
|
every ounce of my earthly muscles into the effort, I cleared
|
||
|
the remaining distance between myself and the cliffs in
|
||
|
great leaps and bounds that put me at their base in a moment.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The cliffs rose perpendicular directly from the almost level
|
||
|
sward of the valley. There was no accumulation of fallen debris,
|
||
|
forming a more or less rough ascent to them, as is the case with
|
||
|
nearly all other cliffs I have ever seen. The scattered
|
||
|
boulders that had fallen from above and lay upon or partly
|
||
|
buried in the turf, were the only indication that any
|
||
|
disintegration of the massive, towering pile of rocks ever
|
||
|
had taken place.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My first cursory inspection of the face of the cliffs filled
|
||
|
my heart with forebodings, since nowhere could I discern, except
|
||
|
where the weird herald stood still shrieking his shrill summons, the
|
||
|
faintest indication of even a bare foothold upon the lofty escarpment.
|
||
|
|
||
|
To my right the bottom of the cliff was lost in the dense foliage
|
||
|
of the forest, which terminated at its very foot, rearing its
|
||
|
gorgeous foliage fully a thousand feet against its stern and
|
||
|
forbidding neighbour.
|
||
|
|
||
|
To the left the cliff ran, apparently unbroken, across the
|
||
|
head of the broad valley, to be lost in the outlines of what
|
||
|
appeared to be a range of mighty mountains that skirted
|
||
|
and confined the valley in every direction.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Perhaps a thousand feet from me the river broke, as it
|
||
|
seemed, directly from the base of the cliffs, and as there
|
||
|
seemed not the remotest chance for escape in that direction
|
||
|
I turned my attention again toward the forest.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The cliffs towered above me a good five thousand feet.
|
||
|
The sun was not quite upon them and they loomed a dull
|
||
|
yellow in their own shade. Here and there they were broken
|
||
|
with streaks and patches of dusky red, green, and occasional
|
||
|
areas of white quartz.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Altogether they were very beautiful, but I fear that I did
|
||
|
not regard them with a particularly appreciative eye on this,
|
||
|
my first inspection of them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Just then I was absorbed in them only as a medium of
|
||
|
escape, and so, as my gaze ran quickly, time and again,
|
||
|
over their vast expanse in search of some cranny or crevice,
|
||
|
I came suddenly to loathe them as the prisoner must loathe
|
||
|
the cruel and impregnable walls of his dungeon.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Tars Tarkas was approaching me rapidly, and still more
|
||
|
rapidly came the awful horde at his heels.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It seemed the forest now or nothing, and I was just on the
|
||
|
point of motioning Tars Tarkas to follow me in that direction
|
||
|
when the sun passed the cliff's zenith, and as the bright rays
|
||
|
touched the dull surface it burst out into a million scintillant
|
||
|
lights of burnished gold, of flaming red, of soft greens, and
|
||
|
gleaming whites--a more gorgeous and inspiring spectacle
|
||
|
human eye has never rested upon.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The face of the entire cliff was, as later inspection
|
||
|
conclusively proved, so shot with veins and patches of
|
||
|
solid gold as to quite present the appearance of a solid wall of
|
||
|
that precious metal except where it was broken by outcroppings of
|
||
|
ruby, emerald, and diamond boulders--a faint and alluring
|
||
|
indication of the vast and unguessable riches which lay
|
||
|
deeply buried behind the magnificent surface.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But what caught my most interested attention at the moment
|
||
|
that the sun's rays set the cliff's face a-shimmer, was the
|
||
|
several black spots which now appeared quite plainly in evidence
|
||
|
high across the gorgeous wall close to the forest's top,
|
||
|
and extending apparently below and behind the branches.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Almost immediately I recognised them for what they were,
|
||
|
the dark openings of caves entering the solid walls--possible
|
||
|
avenues of escape or temporary shelter, could we but reach them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was but a single way, and that led through the
|
||
|
mighty, towering trees upon our right. That I could scale
|
||
|
them I knew full well, but Tars Tarkas, with his mighty bulk
|
||
|
and enormous weight, would find it a task possibly quite
|
||
|
beyond his prowess or his skill, for Martians are at best but
|
||
|
poor climbers. Upon the entire surface of that ancient planet
|
||
|
I never before had seen a hill or mountain that exceeded four
|
||
|
thousand feet in height above the dead sea bottoms, and as
|
||
|
the ascent was usually gradual, nearly to their summits they
|
||
|
presented but few opportunities for the practice of climbing.
|
||
|
Nor would the Martians have embraced even such opportunities
|
||
|
as might present themselves, for they could always find a
|
||
|
circuitous route about the base of any eminence, and these
|
||
|
roads they preferred and followed in preference to the
|
||
|
shorter but more arduous ways.
|
||
|
|
||
|
However, there was nothing else to consider than an attempt
|
||
|
to scale the trees contiguous to the cliff in an effort to
|
||
|
reach the caves above.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The Thark grasped the possibilities and the difficulties of
|
||
|
the plan at once, but there was no alternative, and so we
|
||
|
set out rapidly for the trees nearest the cliff.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Our relentless pursuers were now close to us, so close that
|
||
|
it seemed that it would be an utter impossibility for the
|
||
|
Jeddak of Thark to reach the forest in advance of them, nor
|
||
|
was there any considerable will in the efforts that Tars Tarkas
|
||
|
made, for the green men of Barsoom do not relish flight, nor
|
||
|
ever before had I seen one fleeing from death in whatsoever
|
||
|
form it might have confronted him. But that Tars Tarkas was
|
||
|
the bravest of the brave he had proven thousands of times;
|
||
|
yes, tens of thousands in countless mortal combats with men
|
||
|
and beasts. And so I knew that there was another reason than
|
||
|
fear of death behind his flight, as he knew that a greater
|
||
|
power than pride or honour spurred me to escape these
|
||
|
fierce destroyers. In my case it was love--love of the divine
|
||
|
Dejah Thoris; and the cause of the Thark's great and sudden
|
||
|
love of life I could not fathom, for it is oftener that they seek
|
||
|
death than life--these strange, cruel, loveless, unhappy people.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At length, however, we reached the shadows of the forest, while
|
||
|
right behind us sprang the swiftest of our pursuers--a giant plant man
|
||
|
with claws outreaching to fasten his bloodsucking mouths upon us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He was, I should say, a hundred yards in advance of his
|
||
|
closest companion, and so I called to Tars Tarkas to ascend a
|
||
|
great tree that brushed the cliff's face while I dispatched the
|
||
|
fellow, thus giving the less agile Thark an opportunity to
|
||
|
reach the higher branches before the entire horde should be
|
||
|
upon us and every vestige of escape cut off.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But I had reckoned without a just appreciation either of
|
||
|
the cunning of my immediate antagonist or the swiftness
|
||
|
with which his fellows were covering the distance which had
|
||
|
separated them from me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I raised my long-sword to deal the creature its death
|
||
|
thrust it halted in its charge and, as my sword cut harmlessly
|
||
|
through the empty air, the great tail of the thing swept with
|
||
|
the power of a grizzly's arm across the sward and carried
|
||
|
me bodily from my feet to the ground. In an instant the brute
|
||
|
was upon me, but ere it could fasten its hideous mouths into my
|
||
|
breast and throat I grasped a writhing tentacle in either hand.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The plant man was well muscled, heavy, and powerful
|
||
|
but my earthly sinews and greater agility, in conjunction
|
||
|
with the deathly strangle hold I had upon him, would have
|
||
|
given me, I think, an eventual victory had we had time to
|
||
|
discuss the merits of our relative prowess uninterrupted.
|
||
|
But as we strained and struggled about the tree into which
|
||
|
Tars Tarkas was clambering with infinite difficulty, I suddenly
|
||
|
caught a glimpse over the shoulder of my antagonist of the
|
||
|
great swarm of pursuers that now were fairly upon me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now, at last, I saw the nature of the other monsters who
|
||
|
had come with the plant men in response to the weird calling
|
||
|
of the man upon the cliff's face. They were that most dreaded
|
||
|
of Martian creatures--great white apes of Barsoom.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My former experiences upon Mars had familiarized me
|
||
|
thoroughly with them and their methods, and I may say that
|
||
|
of all the fearsome and terrible, weird and grotesque inhabitants
|
||
|
of that strange world, it is the white apes that come nearest
|
||
|
to familiarizing me with the sensation of fear.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I think that the cause of this feeling which these apes
|
||
|
engender within me is due to their remarkable resemblance
|
||
|
in form to our Earth men, which gives them a human appearance
|
||
|
that is most uncanny when coupled with their enormous size.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They stand fifteen feet in height and walk erect upon their
|
||
|
hind feet. Like the green Martians, they have an intermediary
|
||
|
set of arms midway between their upper and lower limbs.
|
||
|
Their eyes are very close set, but do not protrude as do those
|
||
|
of the green men of Mars; their ears are high set, but more
|
||
|
laterally located than are the green men's, while their snouts
|
||
|
and teeth are much like those of our African gorilla. Upon
|
||
|
their heads grows an enormous shock of bristly hair.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was into the eyes of such as these and the terrible plant
|
||
|
men that I gazed above the shoulder of my foe, and then, in
|
||
|
a mighty wave of snarling, snapping, screaming, purring rage,
|
||
|
they swept over me--and of all the sounds that assailed my
|
||
|
ears as I went down beneath them, to me the most hideous
|
||
|
was the horrid purring of the plant men.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Instantly a score of cruel fangs and keen talons were sunk
|
||
|
into my flesh; cold, sucking lips fastened themselves upon my
|
||
|
arteries. I struggled to free myself, and even though weighed
|
||
|
down by these immense bodies, I succeeded in struggling to
|
||
|
my feet, where, still grasping my long-sword, and shortening my
|
||
|
grip upon it until I could use it as a dagger, I wrought such
|
||
|
havoc among them that at one time I stood for an instant free.
|
||
|
|
||
|
What it has taken minutes to write occurred in but a few
|
||
|
seconds, but during that time Tars Tarkas had seen my plight
|
||
|
and had dropped from the lower branches, which he had
|
||
|
reached with such infinite labour, and as I flung the last
|
||
|
of my immediate antagonists from me the great Thark leaped
|
||
|
to my side, and again we fought, back to back, as we
|
||
|
had done a hundred times before.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Time and again the ferocious apes sprang in to close with
|
||
|
us, and time and again we beat them back with our swords.
|
||
|
The great tails of the plant men lashed with tremendous
|
||
|
power about us as they charged from various directions or
|
||
|
sprang with the agility of greyhounds above our heads; but
|
||
|
every attack met a gleaming blade in sword hands that had
|
||
|
been reputed for twenty years the best that Mars ever had
|
||
|
known; for Tars Tarkas and John Carter were names that the
|
||
|
fighting men of the world of warriors loved best to speak.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But even the two best swords in a world of fighters can
|
||
|
avail not for ever against overwhelming numbers of fierce
|
||
|
and savage brutes that know not what defeat means until
|
||
|
cold steel teaches their hearts no longer to beat, and so, step
|
||
|
by step, we were forced back. At length we stood against the
|
||
|
giant tree that we had chosen for our ascent, and then, as
|
||
|
charge after charge hurled its weight upon us, we gave back
|
||
|
again and again, until we had been forced half-way around
|
||
|
the huge base of the colossal trunk.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Tars Tarkas was in the lead, and suddenly I heard a little
|
||
|
cry of exultation from him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Here is shelter for one at least, John Carter," he said,
|
||
|
and, glancing down, I saw an opening in the base of the tree
|
||
|
about three feet in diameter.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In with you, Tars Tarkas," I cried, but he would not go;
|
||
|
saying that his bulk was too great for the little aperture,
|
||
|
while I might slip in easily.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We shall both die if we remain without, John Carter; here
|
||
|
is a slight chance for one of us. Take it and you may live
|
||
|
to avenge me, it is useless for me to attempt to worm my
|
||
|
way into so small an opening with this horde of demons
|
||
|
besetting us on all sides."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then we shall die together, Tars Tarkas," I replied, "for I
|
||
|
shall not go first. Let me defend the opening while you get
|
||
|
in, then my smaller stature will permit me to slip in with you
|
||
|
before they can prevent."
|
||
|
|
||
|
We still were fighting furiously as we talked in broken sentences,
|
||
|
punctured with vicious cuts and thrusts at our swarming enemy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At length he yielded, for it seemed the only way in which
|
||
|
either of us might be saved from the ever-increasing numbers
|
||
|
of our assailants, who were still swarming upon us from all
|
||
|
directions across the broad valley.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It was ever your way, John Carter, to think last of your
|
||
|
own life," he said; "but still more your way to command the
|
||
|
lives and actions of others, even to the greatest of Jeddaks
|
||
|
who rule upon Barsoom."
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was a grim smile upon his cruel, hard face, as he,
|
||
|
the greatest Jeddak of them all, turned to obey the dictates
|
||
|
of a creature of another world--of a man whose stature was
|
||
|
less than half his own.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If you fail, John Carter," he said, "know that the cruel
|
||
|
and heartless Thark, to whom you taught the meaning of
|
||
|
friendship, will come out to die beside you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"As you will, my friend," I replied; "but quickly now,
|
||
|
head first, while I cover your retreat."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He hesitated a little at that word, for never before in his
|
||
|
whole life of continual strife had he turned his back upon
|
||
|
aught than a dead or defeated enemy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Haste, Tars Tarkas," I urged, "or we shall both go down
|
||
|
to profitless defeat; I cannot hold them for ever alone."
|
||
|
|
||
|
As he dropped to the ground to force his way into the
|
||
|
tree, the whole howling pack of hideous devils hurled themselves
|
||
|
upon me. To right and left flew my shimmering blade,
|
||
|
now green with the sticky juice of a plant man, now red
|
||
|
with the crimson blood of a great white ape; but always
|
||
|
flying from one opponent to another, hesitating but the barest
|
||
|
fraction of a second to drink the lifeblood in the centre of
|
||
|
some savage heart.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And thus I fought as I never had fought before, against such
|
||
|
frightful odds that I cannot realize even now that human
|
||
|
muscles could have withstood that awful onslaught, that
|
||
|
terrific weight of hurtling tons of ferocious, battling flesh.
|
||
|
|
||
|
With the fear that we would escape them, the creatures
|
||
|
redoubled their efforts to pull me down, and though the ground
|
||
|
about me was piled high with their dead and dying comrades,
|
||
|
they succeeded at last in overwhelming me, and I went down
|
||
|
beneath them for the second time that day, and once again
|
||
|
felt those awful sucking lips against my flesh.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But scarce had I fallen ere I felt powerful hands grip my ankles,
|
||
|
and in another second I was being drawn within the shelter of
|
||
|
the tree's interior. For a moment it was a tug of war between
|
||
|
Tars Tarkas and a great plant man, who clung tenaciously to my breast,
|
||
|
but presently I got the point of my long-sword beneath him and with
|
||
|
a mighty thrust pierced his vitals.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Torn and bleeding from many cruel wounds, I lay panting
|
||
|
upon the ground within the hollow of the tree, while Tars
|
||
|
Tarkas defended the opening from the furious mob without.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For an hour they howled about the tree, but after a few
|
||
|
attempts to reach us they confined their efforts to terrorizing
|
||
|
shrieks and screams, to horrid growling on the part of the
|
||
|
great white apes, and the fearsome and indescribable purring
|
||
|
by the plant men.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At length, all but a score, who had apparently been left to
|
||
|
prevent our escape, had left us, and our adventure seemed
|
||
|
destined to result in a siege, the only outcome of which could
|
||
|
be our death by starvation; for even should we be able to slip
|
||
|
out after dark, whither in this unknown and hostile valley
|
||
|
could we hope to turn our steps toward possible escape?
|
||
|
|
||
|
As the attacks of our enemies ceased and our eyes became
|
||
|
accustomed to the semi-darkness of the interior of our strange
|
||
|
retreat, I took the opportunity to explore our shelter.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The tree was hollow to an extent of about fifty feet in
|
||
|
diameter, and from its flat, hard floor I judged that it had
|
||
|
often been used to domicile others before our occupancy.
|
||
|
As I raised my eyes toward its roof to note the height I saw
|
||
|
far above me a faint glow of light.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was an opening above. If we could but reach it
|
||
|
we might still hope to make the shelter of the cliff caves.
|
||
|
My eyes had now become quite used to the subdued light of
|
||
|
the interior, and as I pursued my investigation I presently
|
||
|
came upon a rough ladder at the far side of the cave.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Quickly I mounted it, only to find that it connected at the top
|
||
|
with the lower of a series of horizontal wooden bars that spanned
|
||
|
the now narrow and shaft-like interior of the tree's stem.
|
||
|
These bars were set one above another about three feet apart,
|
||
|
and formed a perfect ladder as far above me as I could see.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Dropping to the floor once more, I detailed my discovery
|
||
|
to Tars Tarkas, who suggested that I explore aloft as far as
|
||
|
I could go in safety while he guarded the entrance against a
|
||
|
possible attack.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I hastened above to explore the strange shaft I found
|
||
|
that the ladder of horizontal bars mounted always as far
|
||
|
above me as my eyes could reach, and as I ascended, the
|
||
|
light from above grew brighter and brighter.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For fully five hundred feet I continued to climb, until at
|
||
|
length I reached the opening in the stem which admitted
|
||
|
the light. It was of about the same diameter as the entrance
|
||
|
at the foot of the tree, and opened directly upon a large flat
|
||
|
limb, the well worn surface of which testified to its long
|
||
|
continued use as an avenue for some creature to and from
|
||
|
this remarkable shaft.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I did not venture out upon the limb for fear that I might
|
||
|
be discovered and our retreat in this direction cut off;
|
||
|
but instead hurried to retrace my steps to Tars Tarkas.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I soon reached him and presently we were both ascending
|
||
|
the long ladder toward the opening above.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Tars Tarkas went in advance and as I reached the first
|
||
|
of the horizontal bars I drew the ladder up after me and,
|
||
|
handing it to him, he carried it a hundred feet further aloft,
|
||
|
where he wedged it safely between one of the bars and the
|
||
|
side of the shaft. In like manner I dislodged the lower bars
|
||
|
as I passed them, so that we soon had the interior of the
|
||
|
tree denuded of all possible means of ascent for a distance
|
||
|
of a hundred feet from the base; thus precluding possible
|
||
|
pursuit and attack from the rear.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As we were to learn later, this precaution saved us from dire
|
||
|
predicament, and was eventually the means of our salvation.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When we reached the opening at the top Tars Tarkas drew to one
|
||
|
side that I might pass out and investigate, as, owing to
|
||
|
my lesser weight and greater agility, I was better fitted for the
|
||
|
perilous threading of this dizzy, hanging pathway.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The limb upon which I found myself ascended at a slight
|
||
|
angle toward the cliff, and as I followed it I found that it
|
||
|
terminated a few feet above a narrow ledge which protruded
|
||
|
from the cliff's face at the entrance to a narrow cave.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I approached the slightly more slender extremity of the branch
|
||
|
it bent beneath my weight until, as I balanced perilously
|
||
|
upon its outer tip, it swayed gently on a level with the
|
||
|
ledge at a distance of a couple of feet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Five hundred feet below me lay the vivid scarlet carpet of
|
||
|
the valley; nearly five thousand feet above towered the mighty,
|
||
|
gleaming face of the gorgeous cliffs.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The cave that I faced was not one of those that I had
|
||
|
seen from the ground, and which lay much higher, possibly
|
||
|
a thousand feet. But so far as I might know it was as good
|
||
|
for our purpose as another, and so I returned to the tree
|
||
|
for Tars Tarkas.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Together we wormed our way along the waving pathway,
|
||
|
but when we reached the end of the branch we found that
|
||
|
our combined weight so depressed the limb that the cave's
|
||
|
mouth was now too far above us to be reached.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We finally agreed that Tars Tarkas should return along the
|
||
|
branch, leaving his longest leather harness strap with me,
|
||
|
and that when the limb had risen to a height that would
|
||
|
permit me to enter the cave I was to do so, and on Tars
|
||
|
Tarkas' return I could then lower the strap and haul him up
|
||
|
to the safety of the ledge.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This we did without mishap and soon found ourselves together
|
||
|
upon the verge of a dizzy little balcony, with a magnificent
|
||
|
view of the valley spreading out below us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As far as the eye could reach gorgeous forest and crimson
|
||
|
sward skirted a silent sea, and about all towered the brilliant
|
||
|
monster guardian cliffs. Once we thought we discerned a
|
||
|
gilded minaret gleaming in the sun amidst the waving tops
|
||
|
of far-distant trees, but we soon abandoned the idea in the
|
||
|
belief that it was but an hallucination born of our great desire
|
||
|
to discover the haunts of civilized men in this beautiful, yet
|
||
|
forbidding, spot.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Below us upon the river's bank the great white apes were
|
||
|
devouring the last remnants of Tars Tarkas' former companions,
|
||
|
while great herds of plant men grazed in ever-widening circles
|
||
|
about the sward which they kept as close clipped as the
|
||
|
smoothest of lawns.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Knowing that attack from the tree was now improbable,
|
||
|
we determined to explore the cave, which we had every
|
||
|
reason to believe was but a continuation of the path we
|
||
|
had already traversed, leading the gods alone knew where,
|
||
|
but quite evidently away from this valley of grim ferocity.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As we advanced we found a well-proportioned tunnel cut from
|
||
|
the solid cliff. Its walls rose some twenty feet above the
|
||
|
floor, which was about five feet in width. The roof was arched.
|
||
|
We had no means of making a light, and so groped our way
|
||
|
slowly into the ever-increasing darkness, Tars Tarkas keeping
|
||
|
in touch with one wall while I felt along the other, while, to
|
||
|
prevent our wandering into diverging branches and becoming
|
||
|
separated or lost in some intricate and labyrinthine maze,
|
||
|
we clasped hands.
|
||
|
|
||
|
How far we traversed the tunnel in this manner I do not
|
||
|
know, but presently we came to an obstruction which blocked
|
||
|
our further progress. It seemed more like a partition than a
|
||
|
sudden ending of the cave, for it was constructed not of
|
||
|
the material of the cliff, but of something which felt like
|
||
|
very hard wood.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Silently I groped over its surface with my hands, and
|
||
|
presently was rewarded by the feel of the button which as
|
||
|
commonly denotes a door on Mars as does a door knob on Earth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Gently pressing it, I had the satisfaction of feeling the
|
||
|
door slowly give before me, and in another instant we were
|
||
|
looking into a dimly lighted apartment, which, so far as we
|
||
|
could see, was unoccupied.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Without more ado I swung the door wide open and, followed
|
||
|
by the huge Thark, stepped into the chamber. As we stood
|
||
|
for a moment in silence gazing about the room a slight noise
|
||
|
behind caused me to turn quickly, when, to my astonishment,
|
||
|
I saw the door close with a sharp click as though by an
|
||
|
unseen hand.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Instantly I sprang toward it to wrench it open again,
|
||
|
for something in the uncanny movement of the thing and the
|
||
|
tense and almost palpable silence of the chamber seemed
|
||
|
to portend a lurking evil lying hidden in this rock-bound
|
||
|
chamber within the bowels of the Golden Cliffs.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My fingers clawed futilely at the unyielding portal, while
|
||
|
my eyes sought in vain for a duplicate of the button which
|
||
|
had given us ingress.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And then, from unseen lips, a cruel and mocking peal of
|
||
|
laughter rang through the desolate place.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER III
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE CHAMBER OF MYSTERY
|
||
|
|
||
|
For moments after that awful laugh had ceased reverberating
|
||
|
through the rocky room, Tars Tarkas and I stood in tense and
|
||
|
expectant silence. But no further sound broke the stillness,
|
||
|
nor within the range of our vision did aught move.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At length Tars Tarkas laughed softly, after the manner of his
|
||
|
strange kind when in the presence of the horrible or terrifying.
|
||
|
It is not an hysterical laugh, but rather the genuine expression
|
||
|
of the pleasure they derive from the things that move Earth men
|
||
|
to loathing or to tears.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Often and again have I seen them roll upon the ground
|
||
|
in mad fits of uncontrollable mirth when witnessing the
|
||
|
death agonies of women and little children beneath the
|
||
|
torture of that hellish green Martian fete--the Great Games.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I looked up at the Thark, a smile upon my own lips, for here in
|
||
|
truth was greater need for a smiling face than a trembling chin.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What do you make of it all?" I asked. "Where in the deuce are we?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He looked at me in surprise.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Where are we?" he repeated. "Do you tell me, John Carter,
|
||
|
that you know not where you be?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That I am upon Barsoom is all that I can guess, and but
|
||
|
for you and the great white apes I should not even guess
|
||
|
that, for the sights I have seen this day are as unlike the
|
||
|
things of my beloved Barsoom as I knew it ten long years
|
||
|
ago as they are unlike the world of my birth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, Tars Tarkas, I know not where we be."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Where have you been since you opened the mighty portals
|
||
|
of the atmosphere plant years ago, after the keeper had
|
||
|
died and the engines stopped and all Barsoom was dying,
|
||
|
that had not already died, of asphyxiation? Your body even
|
||
|
was never found, though the men of a whole world sought
|
||
|
after it for years, though the Jeddak of Helium and his
|
||
|
granddaughter, your princess, offered such fabulous rewards
|
||
|
that even princes of royal blood joined in the search.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There was but one conclusion to reach when all efforts to
|
||
|
locate you had failed, and that, that you had taken the long,
|
||
|
last pilgrimage down the mysterious River Iss, to await in
|
||
|
the Valley Dor upon the shores of the Lost Sea of Korus
|
||
|
the beautiful Dejah Thoris, your princess.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why you had gone none could guess, for your princess still lived--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Thank God," I interrupted him. "I did not dare to ask you,
|
||
|
for I feared I might have been too late to save her--
|
||
|
she was very low when I left her in the royal gardens of
|
||
|
Tardos Mors that long-gone night; so very low that I scarcely
|
||
|
hoped even then to reach the atmosphere plant ere her dear
|
||
|
spirit had fled from me for ever. And she lives yet?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She lives, John Carter."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You have not told me where we are," I reminded him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We are where I expected to find you, John Carter--and
|
||
|
another. Many years ago you heard the story of the woman
|
||
|
who taught me the thing that green Martians are reared to
|
||
|
hate, the woman who taught me to love. You know the cruel
|
||
|
tortures and the awful death her love won for her at the
|
||
|
hands of the beast, Tal Hajus.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She, I thought, awaited me by the Lost Sea of Korus.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You know that it was left for a man from another world,
|
||
|
for yourself, John Carter, to teach this cruel Thark what
|
||
|
friendship is; and you, I thought, also roamed the care-free
|
||
|
Valley Dor.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Thus were the two I most longed for at the end of the
|
||
|
long pilgrimage I must take some day, and so as the time
|
||
|
had elapsed which Dejah Thoris had hoped might bring you
|
||
|
once more to her side, for she has always tried to believe that
|
||
|
you had but temporarily returned to your own planet, I at
|
||
|
last gave way to my great yearning and a month since I started
|
||
|
upon the journey, the end of which you have this day witnessed.
|
||
|
Do you understand now where you be, John Carter?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And that was the River Iss, emptying into the Lost Sea of
|
||
|
Korus in the Valley Dor?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This is the valley of love and peace and rest to which every
|
||
|
Barsoomian since time immemorial has longed to pilgrimage
|
||
|
at the end of a life of hate and strife and bloodshed,"
|
||
|
he replied. "This, John Carter, is Heaven."
|
||
|
|
||
|
His tone was cold and ironical; its bitterness but reflecting
|
||
|
the terrible disappointment he had suffered. Such a fearful
|
||
|
disillusionment, such a blasting of life-long hopes and aspirations,
|
||
|
such an uprooting of age-old tradition might have excused a vastly
|
||
|
greater demonstration on the part of the Thark.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I laid my hand upon his shoulder.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am sorry," I said, nor did there seem aught else to say.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Think, John Carter, of the countless billions of Barsoomians
|
||
|
who have taken the voluntary pilgrimage down this cruel river
|
||
|
since the beginning of time, only to fall into the ferocious
|
||
|
clutches of the terrible creatures that to-day assailed us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There is an ancient legend that once a red man returned
|
||
|
from the banks of the Lost Sea of Korus, returned from the
|
||
|
Valley Dor, back through the mysterious River Iss, and the
|
||
|
legend has it that he narrated a fearful blasphemy of horrid
|
||
|
brutes that inhabited a valley of wondrous loveliness,
|
||
|
brutes that pounced upon each Barsoomian as he terminated
|
||
|
his pilgrimage and devoured him upon the banks of the Lost
|
||
|
Sea where he had looked to find love and peace and happiness;
|
||
|
but the ancients killed the blasphemer, as tradition has
|
||
|
ordained that any shall be killed who return from the bosom
|
||
|
of the River of Mystery.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But now we know that it was no blasphemy, that the
|
||
|
legend is a true one, and that the man told only of what he
|
||
|
saw; but what does it profit us, John Carter, since even should
|
||
|
we escape, we also would be treated as blasphemers? We
|
||
|
are between the wild thoat of certainty and the mad zitidar
|
||
|
of fact--we can escape neither."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"As Earth men say, we are between the devil and the deep sea,
|
||
|
Tars Tarkas," I replied, nor could I help but smile at our dilemma.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There is naught that we can do but take things as they come,
|
||
|
and at least have the satisfaction of knowing that whoever
|
||
|
slays us eventually will have far greater numbers of their
|
||
|
own dead to count than they will get in return. White ape or
|
||
|
plant man, green Barsoomian or red man, whosoever it shall
|
||
|
be that takes the last toll from us will know that it is costly
|
||
|
in lives to wipe out John Carter, Prince of the House of
|
||
|
Tardos Mors, and Tars Tarkas, Jeddak of Thark, at the same time."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I could not help but laugh at him grim humour, and he
|
||
|
joined in with me in one of those rare laughs of real
|
||
|
enjoyment which was one of the attributes of this fierce
|
||
|
Tharkian chief which marked him from the others of his kind.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But about yourself, John Carter," he cried at last. "If you
|
||
|
have not been here all these years where indeed have you
|
||
|
been, and how is it that I find you here to-day?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have been back to Earth," I replied. "For ten long Earth
|
||
|
years I have been praying and hoping for the day that would
|
||
|
carry me once more to this grim old planet of yours, for
|
||
|
which, with all its cruel and terrible customs, I feel a bond
|
||
|
of sympathy and love even greater than for the world that
|
||
|
gave me birth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"For ten years have I been enduring a living death of
|
||
|
uncertainty and doubt as to whether Dejah Thoris lived, and
|
||
|
now that for the first time in all these years my prayers have
|
||
|
been answered and my doubt relieved I find myself, through
|
||
|
a cruel whim of fate, hurled into the one tiny spot of all
|
||
|
Barsoom from which there is apparently no escape, and if
|
||
|
there were, at a price which would put out for ever the last
|
||
|
flickering hope which I may cling to of seeing my princess
|
||
|
again in this life--and you have seen to-day with what pitiful
|
||
|
futility man yearns toward a material hereafter.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Only a bare half-hour before I saw you battling with the
|
||
|
plant men I was standing in the moonlight upon the banks of
|
||
|
a broad river that taps the eastern shore of Earth's most
|
||
|
blessed land. I have answered you, my friend. Do you believe?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I believe," replied Tars Tarkas, "though I cannot understand."
|
||
|
|
||
|
As we talked I had been searching the interior of the
|
||
|
chamber with my eyes. It was, perhaps, two hundred feet
|
||
|
in length and half as broad, with what appeared to be a
|
||
|
doorway in the centre of the wall directly opposite that
|
||
|
through which we had entered.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The apartment was hewn from the material of the cliff,
|
||
|
showing mostly dull gold in the dim light which a single
|
||
|
minute radium illuminator in the centre of the roof diffused
|
||
|
throughout its great dimensions. Here and there polished
|
||
|
surfaces of ruby, emerald, and diamond patched the golden
|
||
|
walls and ceiling. The floor was of another material, very
|
||
|
hard, and worn by much use to the smoothness of glass.
|
||
|
Aside from the two doors I could discern no sign of other
|
||
|
aperture, and as one we knew to be locked against us I
|
||
|
approached the other.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I extended my hand to search for the controlling button,
|
||
|
that cruel and mocking laugh rang out once more, so
|
||
|
close to me this time that I involuntarily shrank back,
|
||
|
tightening my grip upon the hilt of my great sword.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And then from the far corner of the great chamber a hollow
|
||
|
voice chanted: "There is no hope, there is no hope;
|
||
|
the dead return not, the dead return not; nor is there
|
||
|
any resurrection. Hope not, for there is no hope."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Though our eyes instantly turned toward the spot from
|
||
|
which the voice seemed to emanate, there was no one in
|
||
|
sight, and I must admit that cold shivers played along my
|
||
|
spine and the short hairs at the base of my head stiffened
|
||
|
and rose up, as do those upon a hound's neck when in the
|
||
|
night his eyes see those uncanny things which are hidden
|
||
|
from the sight of man.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Quickly I walked toward the mournful voice, but it had
|
||
|
ceased ere I reached the further wall, and then from the other
|
||
|
end of the chamber came another voice, shrill and piercing:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Fools! Fools!" it shrieked. "Thinkest thou to defeat the
|
||
|
eternal laws of life and death? Wouldst cheat the mysterious
|
||
|
Issus, Goddess of Death, of her just dues? Did not her mighty
|
||
|
messenger, the ancient Iss, bear you upon her leaden bosom
|
||
|
at your own behest to the Valley Dor?
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Thinkest thou, O fools, that Issus wilt give up her own?
|
||
|
Thinkest thou to escape from whence in all the countless
|
||
|
ages but a single soul has fled?
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Go back the way thou camest, to the merciful maws of the
|
||
|
children of the Tree of Life or the gleaming fangs of the
|
||
|
great white apes, for there lies speedy surcease from suffering;
|
||
|
but insist in your rash purpose to thread the mazes of the
|
||
|
Golden Cliffs of the Mountains of Otz, past the ramparts
|
||
|
of the impregnable fortresses of the Holy Therns, and upon
|
||
|
your way Death in its most frightful form will overtake you
|
||
|
--a death so horrible that even the Holy Therns themselves,
|
||
|
who conceived both Life and Death, avert their eyes from
|
||
|
its fiendishness and close their ears against the hideous
|
||
|
shrieks of its victims.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Go back, O fools, the way thou camest."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And then the awful laugh broke out from another part
|
||
|
of the chamber.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Most uncanny," I remarked, turning to Tars Tarkas.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What shall we do?" he asked. "We cannot fight empty
|
||
|
air; I would almost sooner return and face foes into whose
|
||
|
flesh I may feel my blade bite and know that I am selling
|
||
|
my carcass dearly before I go down to that eternal oblivion
|
||
|
which is evidently the fairest and most desirable eternity that
|
||
|
mortal man has the right to hope for."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If, as you say, we cannot fight empty air, Tars Tarkas,"
|
||
|
I replied, "neither, on the other hand, can empty air fight us.
|
||
|
I, who have faced and conquered in my time thousands of sinewy
|
||
|
warriors and tempered blades, shall not be turned back by wind;
|
||
|
nor no more shall you, Thark."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But unseen voices may emanate from unseen and unseeable
|
||
|
creatures who wield invisible blades," answered the green warrior.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Rot, Tars Tarkas," I cried, "those voices come from beings
|
||
|
as real as you or as I. In their veins flows lifeblood that
|
||
|
may be let as easily as ours, and the fact that they remain
|
||
|
invisible to us is the best proof to my mind that they are
|
||
|
mortal; nor overly courageous mortals at that. Think you,
|
||
|
Tars Tarkas, that John Carter will fly at the first shriek of a
|
||
|
cowardly foe who dare not come out into the open and face a good blade?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had spoken in a loud voice that there might be no
|
||
|
question that our would-be terrorizers should hear me, for I
|
||
|
was tiring of this nerve-racking fiasco. It had occurred to me,
|
||
|
too, that the whole business was but a plan to frighten us
|
||
|
back into the valley of death from which we had escaped, that
|
||
|
we might be quickly disposed of by the savage creatures there.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For a long period there was silence, then of a sudden a soft,
|
||
|
stealthy sound behind me caused me to turn suddenly to behold
|
||
|
a great many-legged banth creeping sinuously upon me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The banth is a fierce beast of prey that roams the low
|
||
|
hills surrounding the dead seas of ancient Mars. Like nearly
|
||
|
all Martian animals it is almost hairless, having only a great
|
||
|
bristly mane about its thick neck.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Its long, lithe body is supported by ten powerful legs, its
|
||
|
enormous jaws are equipped, like those of the calot, or
|
||
|
Martian hound, with several rows of long needle-like fangs;
|
||
|
its mouth reaches to a point far back of its tiny ears, while
|
||
|
its enormous, protruding eyes of green add the last touch of
|
||
|
terror to its awful aspect.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As it crept toward me it lashed its powerful tail against
|
||
|
its yellow sides, and when it saw that it was discovered it
|
||
|
emitted the terrifying roar which often freezes its prey into
|
||
|
momentary paralysis in the instant that it makes its spring.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And so it launched its great bulk toward me, but its
|
||
|
mighty voice had held no paralysing terrors for me, and
|
||
|
it met cold steel instead of the tender flesh its cruel jaws
|
||
|
gaped so widely to engulf.
|
||
|
|
||
|
An instant later I drew my blade from the still heart of
|
||
|
this great Barsoomian lion, and turning toward Tars Tarkas
|
||
|
was surprised to see him facing a similar monster.
|
||
|
|
||
|
No sooner had he dispatched his than I, turning, as though
|
||
|
drawn by the instinct of my guardian subconscious mind,
|
||
|
beheld another of the savage denizens of the Martian wilds
|
||
|
leaping across the chamber toward me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
From then on for the better part of an hour one hideous
|
||
|
creature after another was launched upon us, springing
|
||
|
apparently from the empty air about us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Tars Tarkas was satisfied; here was something tangible that
|
||
|
he could cut and slash with his great blade, while I, for my
|
||
|
part, may say that the diversion was a marked improvement
|
||
|
over the uncanny voices from unseen lips.
|
||
|
|
||
|
That there was nothing supernatural about our new foes was
|
||
|
well evidenced by their howls of rage and pain as they felt
|
||
|
the sharp steel at their vitals, and the very real blood
|
||
|
which flowed from their severed arteries as they died the
|
||
|
real death.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I noticed during the period of this new persecution that the
|
||
|
beasts appeared only when our backs were turned; we never saw
|
||
|
one really materialize from thin air, nor did I for an instant
|
||
|
sufficiently lose my excellent reasoning faculties to be once
|
||
|
deluded into the belief that the beasts came into the room
|
||
|
other than through some concealed and well-contrived doorway.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Among the ornaments of Tars Tarkas' leather harness,
|
||
|
which is the only manner of clothing worn by Martians other
|
||
|
than silk capes and robes of silk and fur for protection from
|
||
|
the cold after dark, was a small mirror, about the bigness
|
||
|
of a lady's hand glass, which hung midway between his
|
||
|
shoulders and his waist against his broad back.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Once as he stood looking down at a newly fallen antagonist
|
||
|
my eyes happened to fall upon this mirror and in its shiny
|
||
|
surface I saw pictured a sight that caused me to whisper:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Move not, Tars Tarkas! Move not a muscle!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He did not ask why, but stood like a graven image
|
||
|
while my eyes watched the strange thing that meant so
|
||
|
much to us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
What I saw was the quick movement of a section of the
|
||
|
wall behind me. It was turning upon pivots, and with it a
|
||
|
section of the floor directly in front of it was turning. It was
|
||
|
as though you placed a visiting-card upon end on a silver
|
||
|
dollar that you had laid flat upon a table, so that the edge
|
||
|
of the card perfectly bisected the surface of the coin.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The card might represent the section of the wall that turned
|
||
|
and the silver dollar the section of the floor. Both were so
|
||
|
nicely fitted into the adjacent portions of the floor and wall
|
||
|
that no crack had been noticeable in the dim light of the chamber.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As the turn was half completed a great beast was revealed
|
||
|
sitting upon its haunches upon that part of the revolving floor
|
||
|
that had been on the opposite side before the wall commenced
|
||
|
to move; when the section stopped, the beast was facing toward
|
||
|
me on our side of the partition--it was very simple.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But what had interested me most was the sight that the
|
||
|
half-turned section had presented through the opening that
|
||
|
it had made. A great chamber, well lighted, in which were
|
||
|
several men and women chained to the wall, and in front of
|
||
|
them, evidently directing and operating the movement of the
|
||
|
secret doorway, a wicked-faced man, neither red as are the
|
||
|
red men of Mars, nor green as are the green men, but white,
|
||
|
like myself, with a great mass of flowing yellow hair.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The prisoners behind him were red Martians. Chained with
|
||
|
them were a number of fierce beasts, such as had been turned
|
||
|
upon us, and others equally as ferocious.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I turned to meet my new foe it was with a heart
|
||
|
considerably lightened.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Watch the wall at your end of the chamber, Tars Tarkas,"
|
||
|
I cautioned, "it is through secret doorways in the wall that
|
||
|
the brutes are loosed upon us." I was very close to him and
|
||
|
spoke in a low whisper that my knowledge of their secret
|
||
|
might not be disclosed to our tormentors.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As long as we remained each facing an opposite end of
|
||
|
the apartment no further attacks were made upon us, so it
|
||
|
was quite clear to me that the partitions were in some way
|
||
|
pierced that our actions might be observed from without.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At length a plan of action occurred to me, and backing quite
|
||
|
close to Tars Tarkas I unfolded my scheme in a low whisper,
|
||
|
keeping my eyes still glued upon my end of the room.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The great Thark grunted his assent to my proposition when I
|
||
|
had done, and in accordance with my plan commenced backing
|
||
|
toward the wall which I faced while I advanced slowly ahead of him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When we had reached a point some ten feet from the
|
||
|
secret doorway I halted my companion, and cautioning him
|
||
|
to remain absolutely motionless until I gave the prearranged
|
||
|
signal I quickly turned my back to the door through which
|
||
|
I could almost feel the burning and baleful eyes of our
|
||
|
would be executioner.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Instantly my own eyes sought the mirror upon Tars Tarkas' back
|
||
|
and in another second I was closely watching the section of the
|
||
|
wall which had been disgorging its savage terrors upon us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had not long to wait, for presently the golden surface
|
||
|
commenced to move rapidly. Scarcely had it started than I
|
||
|
gave the signal to Tars Tarkas, simultaneously springing for
|
||
|
the receding half of the pivoting door. In like manner the
|
||
|
Thark wheeled and leaped for the opening being made by
|
||
|
the inswinging section.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A single bound carried me completely through into the
|
||
|
adjoining room and brought me face to face with the fellow
|
||
|
whose cruel face I had seen before. He was about my own
|
||
|
height and well muscled and in every outward detail moulded
|
||
|
precisely as are Earth men.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At his side hung a long-sword, a short-sword, a dagger, and one
|
||
|
of the destructive radium revolvers that are common upon Mars.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The fact that I was armed only with a long-sword, and so
|
||
|
according to the laws and ethics of battle everywhere upon
|
||
|
Barsoom should only have been met with a similar or lesser weapon,
|
||
|
seemed to have no effect upon the moral sense of my enemy,
|
||
|
for he whipped out his revolver ere I scarce had touched the
|
||
|
floor by his side, but an uppercut from my long-sword sent it
|
||
|
flying from his grasp before he could discharge it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Instantly he drew his long-sword, and thus evenly armed we set to
|
||
|
in earnest for one of the closest battles I ever have fought.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The fellow was a marvellous swordsman and evidently in practice,
|
||
|
while I had not gripped the hilt of a sword for ten long years
|
||
|
before that morning.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But it did not take me long to fall easily into my fighting stride,
|
||
|
so that in a few minutes the man began to realize that he had at last
|
||
|
met his match.
|
||
|
|
||
|
His face became livid with rage as he found my guard impregnable,
|
||
|
while blood flowed from a dozen minor wounds upon his face and body.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Who are you, white man?" he hissed. "That you are no
|
||
|
Barsoomian from the outer world is evident from your colour.
|
||
|
And you are not of us."
|
||
|
|
||
|
His last statement was almost a question.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What if I were from the Temple of Issus?" I hazarded on a wild guess.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Fate forfend!" he exclaimed, his face going white under
|
||
|
the blood that now nearly covered it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I did not know how to follow up my lead, but I carefully laid
|
||
|
the idea away for future use should circumstances require it.
|
||
|
His answer indicated that for all he KNEW I might be from
|
||
|
the Temple of Issus and in it were men like unto myself,
|
||
|
and either this man feared the inmates of the temple or else
|
||
|
he held their persons or their power in such reverence that he
|
||
|
trembled to think of the harm and indignities he had heaped
|
||
|
upon one of them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But my present business with him was of a different nature
|
||
|
than that which requires any considerable abstract reasoning;
|
||
|
it was to get my sword between his ribs, and this I succeeded
|
||
|
in doing within the next few seconds, nor was I an instant too soon.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The chained prisoners had been watching the combat in
|
||
|
tense silence; not a sound had fallen in the room other than
|
||
|
the clashing of our contending blades, the soft shuffling of
|
||
|
our naked feet and the few whispered words we had hissed
|
||
|
at each other through clenched teeth the while we continued
|
||
|
our mortal duel.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But as the body of my antagonist sank an inert mass to
|
||
|
the floor a cry of warning broke from one of the female prisoners.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Turn! Turn! Behind you!" she shrieked, and as I wheeled
|
||
|
at the first note of her shrill cry I found myself facing a
|
||
|
second man of the same race as he who lay at my feet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The fellow had crept stealthily from a dark corridor and
|
||
|
was almost upon me with raised sword ere I saw him. Tars
|
||
|
Tarkas was nowhere in sight and the secret panel in the wall,
|
||
|
through which I had come, was closed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
How I wished that he were by my side now! I had fought
|
||
|
almost continuously for many hours; I had passed through such
|
||
|
experiences and adventures as must sap the vitality of man,
|
||
|
and with all this I had not eaten for nearly twenty-four hours,
|
||
|
nor slept.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was fagged out, and for the first time in years felt a
|
||
|
question as to my ability to cope with an antagonist; but
|
||
|
there was naught else for it than to engage my man, and
|
||
|
that as quickly and ferociously as lay in me, for my only
|
||
|
salvation was to rush him off his feet by the impetuosity of
|
||
|
my attack--I could not hope to win a long-drawn-out battle.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But the fellow was evidently of another mind, for he backed
|
||
|
and parried and parried and sidestepped until I was almost
|
||
|
completely fagged from the exertion of attempting to finish him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He was a more adroit swordsman, if possible, than my previous foe,
|
||
|
and I must admit that he led me a pretty chase and in the end
|
||
|
came near to making a sorry fool of me--and a dead one into the bargain.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I could feel myself growing weaker and weaker, until at
|
||
|
length objects commenced to blur before my eyes and I
|
||
|
staggered and blundered about more asleep than awake,
|
||
|
and then it was that he worked his pretty little coup
|
||
|
that came near to losing me my life.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He had backed me around so that I stood in front of the
|
||
|
corpse of his fellow, and then he rushed me suddenly so that
|
||
|
I was forced back upon it, and as my heel struck it the
|
||
|
impetus of my body flung me backward across the dead man.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My head struck the hard pavement with a resounding
|
||
|
whack, and to that alone I owe my life, for it cleared my
|
||
|
brain and the pain roused my temper, so that I was equal
|
||
|
for the moment to tearing my enemy to pieces with my bare
|
||
|
hands, and I verily believe that I should have attempted it had
|
||
|
not my right hand, in the act of raising my body from the
|
||
|
ground, come in contact with a bit of cold metal.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As the eyes of the layman so is the hand of the fighting man
|
||
|
when it comes in contact with an implement of his vocation,
|
||
|
and thus I did not need to look or reason to know that
|
||
|
the dead man's revolver, lying where it had fallen when I
|
||
|
struck it from his grasp, was at my disposal.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The fellow whose ruse had put me down was springing toward me,
|
||
|
the point of his gleaming blade directed straight at my heart,
|
||
|
and as he came there rang from his lips the cruel and mocking peal
|
||
|
of laughter that I had heard within the Chamber of Mystery.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And so he died, his thin lips curled in the snarl of his hateful
|
||
|
laugh, and a bullet from the revolver of his dead companion
|
||
|
bursting in his heart.
|
||
|
|
||
|
His body, borne by the impetus of his headlong rush, plunged upon me.
|
||
|
The hilt of his sword must have struck my head, for with the impact
|
||
|
of the corpse I lost consciousness.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER IV
|
||
|
|
||
|
THUVIA
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was the sound of conflict that aroused me once more to
|
||
|
the realities of life. For a moment I could neither place my
|
||
|
surroundings nor locate the sounds which had aroused me.
|
||
|
And then from beyond the blank wall beside which I lay I
|
||
|
heard the shuffling of feet, the snarling of grim beasts, the
|
||
|
clank of metal accoutrements, and the heavy breathing of a man.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I rose to my feet I glanced hurriedly about the chamber
|
||
|
in which I had just encountered such a warm reception. The
|
||
|
prisoners and the savage brutes rested in their chains by the
|
||
|
opposite wall eyeing me with varying expressions of curiosity,
|
||
|
sullen rage, surprise, and hope.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The latter emotion seemed plainly evident upon the handsome
|
||
|
and intelligent face of the young red Martian woman whose cry
|
||
|
of warning had been instrumental in saving my life.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She was the perfect type of that remarkably beautiful race
|
||
|
whose outward appearance is identical with the more god-like
|
||
|
races of Earth men, except that this higher race of Martians
|
||
|
is of a light reddish copper colour. As she was entirely
|
||
|
unadorned I could not even guess her station in life, though
|
||
|
it was evident that she was either a prisoner or slave in her
|
||
|
present environment.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was several seconds before the sounds upon the opposite
|
||
|
side of the partition jolted my slowly returning faculties into
|
||
|
a realization of their probable import, and then of a sudden I
|
||
|
grasped the fact that they were caused by Tars Tarkas in
|
||
|
what was evidently a desperate struggle with wild beasts or
|
||
|
savage men.
|
||
|
|
||
|
With a cry of encouragement I threw my weight against the
|
||
|
secret door, but as well have assayed the down-hurling of the
|
||
|
cliffs themselves. Then I sought feverishly for the secret of the
|
||
|
revolving panel, but my search was fruitless, and I was about
|
||
|
to raise my longsword against the sullen gold when the young
|
||
|
woman prisoner called out to me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Save thy sword, O Mighty Warrior, for thou shalt need it
|
||
|
more where it will avail to some purpose--shatter it not
|
||
|
against senseless metal which yields better to the lightest finger
|
||
|
touch of one who knows its secret."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Know you the secret of it then?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes; release me and I will give you entrance to the other
|
||
|
horror chamber, if you wish. The keys to my fetters are upon
|
||
|
the first dead of thy foemen. But why would you return
|
||
|
to face again the fierce banth, or whatever other form of
|
||
|
destruction they have loosed within that awful trap?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Because my friend fights there alone," I answered, as I
|
||
|
hastily sought and found the keys upon the carcass of the
|
||
|
dead custodian of this grim chamber of horrors.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There were many keys upon the oval ring, but the fair Martian maid
|
||
|
quickly selected that which sprung the great lock at her waist,
|
||
|
and freed she hurried toward the secret panel.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Again she sought out a key upon the ring. This time a slender,
|
||
|
needle-like affair which she inserted in an almost invisible hole
|
||
|
in the wall. Instantly the door swung upon its pivot, and the
|
||
|
contiguous section of the floor upon which I was standing
|
||
|
carried me with it into the chamber where Tars Tarkas fought.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The great Thark stood with his back against an angle of the
|
||
|
walls, while facing him in a semi-circle a half-dozen huge
|
||
|
monsters crouched waiting for an opening. Their blood-
|
||
|
streaked heads and shoulders testified to the cause of their
|
||
|
wariness as well as to the swordsmanship of the green warrior
|
||
|
whose glossy hide bore the same mute but eloquent witness to
|
||
|
the ferocity of the attacks that he had so far withstood.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Sharp talons and cruel fangs had torn leg, arm, and breast
|
||
|
literally to ribbons. So weak was he from continued exertion
|
||
|
and loss of blood that but for the supporting wall I doubt
|
||
|
that he even could have stood erect. But with the tenacity and
|
||
|
indomitable courage of his kind he still faced his cruel and
|
||
|
relentless foes--the personification of that ancient proverb of
|
||
|
his tribe: "Leave to a Thark his head and one hand and
|
||
|
he may yet conquer."
|
||
|
|
||
|
As he saw me enter, a grim smile touched those grim lips
|
||
|
of his, but whether the smile signified relief or merely
|
||
|
amusement at the sight of my own bloody and dishevelled
|
||
|
condition I do not know.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I was about to spring into the conflict with my sharp
|
||
|
long-sword I felt a gentle hand upon my shoulder and turning
|
||
|
found, to my surprise, that the young woman had followed me
|
||
|
into the chamber.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Wait," she whispered, "leave them to me," and pushing me advanced,
|
||
|
all defenceless and unarmed, upon the snarling banths.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When quite close to them she spoke a single Martian word
|
||
|
in low but peremptory tones. Like lightning the great beasts
|
||
|
wheeled upon her, and I looked to see her torn to pieces
|
||
|
before I could reach her side, but instead the creatures slunk
|
||
|
to her feet like puppies that expect a merited whipping.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Again she spoke to them, but in tones so low I could not
|
||
|
catch the words, and then she started toward the opposite side
|
||
|
of the chamber with the six mighty monsters trailing at heel.
|
||
|
One by one she sent them through the secret panel into the
|
||
|
room beyond, and when the last had passed from the chamber
|
||
|
where we stood in wide-eyed amazement she turned and smiled
|
||
|
at us and then herself passed through, leaving us alone.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For a moment neither of us spoke. Then Tars Tarkas said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I heard the fighting beyond the partition through which you
|
||
|
passed, but I did not fear for you, John Carter, until I heard
|
||
|
the report of a revolver shot. I knew that there lived no man
|
||
|
upon all Barsoom who could face you with naked steel and live,
|
||
|
but the shot stripped the last vestige of hope from me,
|
||
|
since you I knew to be without firearms. Tell me of it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I did as he bade, and then together we sought the secret
|
||
|
panel through which I had just entered the apartment--the
|
||
|
one at the opposite end of the room from that through which
|
||
|
the girl had led her savage companions.
|
||
|
|
||
|
To our disappointment the panel eluded our every effort to
|
||
|
negotiate its secret lock. We felt that once beyond it we
|
||
|
might look with some little hope of success for a passage to
|
||
|
the outside world.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The fact that the prisoners within were securely chained
|
||
|
led us to believe that surely there must be an avenue of
|
||
|
escape from the terrible creatures which inhabited this
|
||
|
unspeakable place.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Again and again we turned from one door to another,
|
||
|
from the baffling golden panel at one end of the chamber to its
|
||
|
mate at the other--equally baffling.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When we had about given up all hope one of the panels
|
||
|
turned silently toward us, and the young woman who had led
|
||
|
away the banths stood once more beside us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Who are you?" she asked, "and what your mission, that
|
||
|
you have the temerity to attempt to escape from the Valley
|
||
|
Dor and the death you have chosen?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have chosen no death, maiden," I replied. "I am not of
|
||
|
Barsoom, nor have I taken yet the voluntary pilgrimage upon
|
||
|
the River Iss. My friend here is Jeddak of all the Tharks,
|
||
|
and though he has not yet expressed a desire to return to
|
||
|
the living world, I am taking him with me from the living
|
||
|
lie that hath lured him to this frightful place.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am of another world. I am John Carter, Prince of the
|
||
|
House of Tardos Mors, Jeddak of Helium. Perchance some
|
||
|
faint rumour of me may have leaked within the confines of
|
||
|
your hellish abode."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She smiled.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes," she replied, "naught that passes in the world we have
|
||
|
left is unknown here. I have heard of you, many years ago.
|
||
|
The therns have ofttimes wondered whither you had flown,
|
||
|
since you had neither taken the pilgrimage, nor could
|
||
|
be found upon the face of Barsoom."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Tell me," I said, "and who be you, and why a prisoner,
|
||
|
yet with power over the ferocious beasts of the place that
|
||
|
denotes familiarity and authority far beyond that which might
|
||
|
be expected of a prisoner or a slave?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Slave I am," she answered. "For fifteen years a slave in
|
||
|
this terrible place, and now that they have tired of me and
|
||
|
become fearful of the power which my knowledge of their ways
|
||
|
has given me I am but recently condemned to die the death."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She shuddered.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What death?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The Holy Therns eat human flesh," she answered me; "but
|
||
|
only that which has died beneath the sucking lips of a plant
|
||
|
man--flesh from which the defiling blood of life has been
|
||
|
drawn. And to this cruel end I have been condemned. It
|
||
|
was to be within a few hours, had your advent not caused an
|
||
|
interruption of their plans."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Was it then Holy Therns who felt the weight of John
|
||
|
Carter's hand?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, no; those whom you laid low are lesser therns; but
|
||
|
of the same cruel and hateful race. The Holy Therns abide
|
||
|
upon the outer slopes of these grim hills, facing the broad
|
||
|
world from which they harvest their victims and their spoils.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Labyrinthine passages connect these caves with the luxurious
|
||
|
palaces of the Holy Therns, and through them pass upon their
|
||
|
many duties the lesser therns, and hordes of slaves,
|
||
|
and prisoners, and fierce beasts; the grim inhabitants of
|
||
|
this sunless world.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There be within this vast network of winding passages
|
||
|
and countless chambers men, women, and beasts who, born
|
||
|
within its dim and gruesome underworld, have never seen
|
||
|
the light of day--nor ever shall.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They are kept to do the bidding of the race of therns; to
|
||
|
furnish at once their sport and their sustenance.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now and again some hapless pilgrim, drifting out upon
|
||
|
the silent sea from the cold Iss, escapes the plant men and
|
||
|
the great white apes that guard the Temple of Issus and falls
|
||
|
into the remorseless clutches of the therns; or, as was my
|
||
|
misfortune, is coveted by the Holy Thern who chances to be
|
||
|
upon watch in the balcony above the river where it issues
|
||
|
from the bowels of the mountains through the cliffs of gold
|
||
|
to empty into the Lost Sea of Korus.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"All who reach the Valley Dor are, by custom, the rightful
|
||
|
prey of the plant men and the apes, while their arms and
|
||
|
ornaments become the portion of the therns; but if one escapes
|
||
|
the terrible denizens of the valley for even a few hours
|
||
|
the therns may claim such a one as their own. And again
|
||
|
the Holy Thern on watch, should he see a victim he covets,
|
||
|
often tramples upon the rights of the unreasoning brutes of
|
||
|
the valley and takes his prize by foul means if he cannot
|
||
|
gain it by fair.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is said that occasionally some deluded victim of
|
||
|
Barsoomian superstition will so far escape the clutches of
|
||
|
the countless enemies that beset his path from the moment that
|
||
|
he emerges from the subterranean passage through which the
|
||
|
Iss flows for a thousand miles before it enters the Valley Dor
|
||
|
as to reach the very walls of the Temple of Issus; but what
|
||
|
fate awaits one there not even the Holy Therns may guess,
|
||
|
for who has passed within those gilded walls never has
|
||
|
returned to unfold the mysteries they have held since the
|
||
|
beginning of time.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The Temple of Issus is to the therns what the Valley
|
||
|
Dor is imagined by the peoples of the outer world to be to
|
||
|
them; it is the ultimate haven of peace, refuge, and happiness
|
||
|
to which they pass after this life and wherein an eternity of
|
||
|
eternities is spent amidst the delights of the flesh which appeal
|
||
|
most strongly to this race of mental giants and moral pygmies."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The Temple of Issus is, I take it, a heaven within a
|
||
|
heaven," I said. "Let us hope that there it will be meted to
|
||
|
the therns as they have meted it here unto others."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Who knows?" the girl murmured.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The therns, I judge from what you have said, are no
|
||
|
less mortal than we; and yet have I always heard them spoken
|
||
|
of with the utmost awe and reverence by the people of
|
||
|
Barsoom, as one might speak of the gods themselves."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The therns are mortal," she replied. "They die from the
|
||
|
same causes as you or I might: those who do not live their
|
||
|
allotted span of life, one thousand years, when by the authority
|
||
|
of custom they may take their way in happiness through the
|
||
|
long tunnel that leads to Issus.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Those who die before are supposed to spend the balance
|
||
|
of their allotted time in the image of a plant man, and it
|
||
|
is for this reason that the plant men are held sacred by the
|
||
|
therns, since they believe that each of these hideous creatures
|
||
|
was formerly a thern."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And should a plant man die?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Should he die before the expiration of the thousand years
|
||
|
from the birth of the thern whose immortality abides within
|
||
|
him then the soul passes into a great white ape, but should
|
||
|
the ape die short of the exact hour that terminates the thousand
|
||
|
years the soul is for ever lost and passes for all eternity
|
||
|
into the carcass of the slimy and fearsome silian whose wriggling
|
||
|
thousands seethe the silent sea beneath the hurtling moons when
|
||
|
the sun has gone and strange shapes walk through the Valley Dor."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We sent several Holy Therns to the silians to-day, then,"
|
||
|
said Tars Tarkas, laughing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And so will your death be the more terrible when it comes,"
|
||
|
said the maiden. "And come it will--you cannot escape."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"One has escaped, centuries ago," I reminded her, "and
|
||
|
what has been done may be done again."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is useless even to try," she answered hopelessly.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But try we shall," I cried, and you shall go with us, if you wish."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"To be put to death by mine own people, and render
|
||
|
my memory a disgrace to my family and my nation? A
|
||
|
Prince of the House of Tardos Mors should know better
|
||
|
than to suggest such a thing."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Tars Tarkas listened in silence, but I could feel his eyes
|
||
|
riveted upon me and I knew that he awaited my answer as one might
|
||
|
listen to the reading of his sentence by the foreman of a jury.
|
||
|
|
||
|
What I advised the girl to do would seal our fate as well, since
|
||
|
if I bowed to the inevitable decree of age-old superstition we must
|
||
|
all remain and meet our fate in some horrible form within this awful
|
||
|
abode of horror and cruelty.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We have the right to escape if we can," I answered.
|
||
|
"Our own moral senses will not be offended if we succeed,
|
||
|
for we know that the fabled life of love and peace in the
|
||
|
blessed Valley of Dor is a rank and wicked deception. We
|
||
|
know that the valley is not sacred; we know that the Holy
|
||
|
Therns are not holy; that they are a race of cruel and
|
||
|
heartless mortals, knowing no more of the real life to come
|
||
|
than we do.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Not only is it our right to bend every effort to escape
|
||
|
--it is a solemn duty from which we should not shrink even
|
||
|
though we know that we should be reviled and tortured by
|
||
|
our own peoples when we returned to them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Only thus may we carry the truth to those without, and though
|
||
|
the likelihood of our narrative being given credence is,
|
||
|
I grant you, remote, so wedded are mortals to their stupid
|
||
|
infatuation for impossible superstitions, we should be
|
||
|
craven cowards indeed were we to shirk the plain duty
|
||
|
which confronts us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Again there is a chance that with the weight of the testimony
|
||
|
of several of us the truth of our statements may be accepted,
|
||
|
and at least a compromise effected which will result in the
|
||
|
dispatching of an expedition of investigation to this
|
||
|
hideous mockery of heaven."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Both the girl and the green warrior stood silent in thought for
|
||
|
some moments. The former it was who eventually broke the silence.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Never had I considered the matter in that light before,"
|
||
|
she said. "Indeed would I give my life a thousand times if I
|
||
|
could but save a single soul from the awful life that I have
|
||
|
led in this cruel place. Yes, you are right, and I will go with
|
||
|
you as far as we can go; but I doubt that we ever shall escape."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I turned an inquiring glance toward the Thark.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"To the gates of Issus, or to the bottom of Korus," spoke the
|
||
|
green warrior; "to the snows to the north or to the snows
|
||
|
to the south, Tars Tarkas follows where John Carter leads.
|
||
|
I have spoken."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come, then," I cried, "we must make the start, for we
|
||
|
could not be further from escape than we now are in the
|
||
|
heart of this mountain and within the four walls of this
|
||
|
chamber of death."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come, then," said the girl, "but do not flatter yourself that you
|
||
|
can find no worse place than this within the territory of the therns."
|
||
|
|
||
|
So saying she swung the secret panel that separated us
|
||
|
from the apartment in which I had found her, and we stepped
|
||
|
through once more into the presence of the other prisoners.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There were in all ten red Martians, men and women, and
|
||
|
when we had briefly explained our plan they decided to join
|
||
|
forces with us, though it was evident that it was with some
|
||
|
considerable misgivings that they thus tempted fate by
|
||
|
opposing an ancient superstition, even though each knew
|
||
|
through cruel experience the fallacy of its entire fabric.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Thuvia, the girl whom I had first freed, soon had the
|
||
|
others at liberty. Tars Tarkas and I stripped the bodies of the
|
||
|
two therns of their weapons, which included swords, daggers,
|
||
|
and two revolvers of the curious and deadly type manufactured
|
||
|
by the red Martians.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We distributed the weapons as far as they would go among
|
||
|
our followers, giving the firearms to two of the women;
|
||
|
Thuvia being one so armed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
With the latter as our guide we set off rapidly but cautiously
|
||
|
through a maze of passages, crossing great chambers hewn from
|
||
|
the solid metal of the cliff, following winding corridors,
|
||
|
ascending steep inclines, and now and again concealing ourselves
|
||
|
in dark recesses at the sound of approaching footsteps.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Our destination, Thuvia said, was a distant storeroom
|
||
|
where arms and ammunition in plenty might be found.
|
||
|
From there she was to lead us to the summit of the cliffs,
|
||
|
from where it would require both wondrous wit and mighty
|
||
|
fighting to win our way through the very heart of the
|
||
|
stronghold of the Holy Therns to the world without.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And even then, O Prince," she cried, "the arm of the
|
||
|
Holy Thern is long. It reaches to every nation of Barsoom.
|
||
|
His secret temples are hidden in the heart of every community.
|
||
|
Wherever we go should we escape we shall find that word of our
|
||
|
coming has preceded us, and death awaits us before we may
|
||
|
pollute the air with our blasphemies."
|
||
|
|
||
|
We had proceeded for possibly an hour without serious
|
||
|
interruption, and Thuvia had just whispered to me that we
|
||
|
were approaching our first destination, when on entering a
|
||
|
great chamber we came upon a man, evidently a thern.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He wore in addition to his leathern trappings and jewelled
|
||
|
ornaments a great circlet of gold about his brow in the exact
|
||
|
centre of which was set an immense stone, the exact counterpart
|
||
|
of that which I had seen upon the breast of the little old
|
||
|
man at the atmosphere plant nearly twenty years before.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It is the one priceless jewel of Barsoom. Only two are
|
||
|
known to exist, and these were worn as the insignia of their
|
||
|
rank and position by the two old men in whose charge was
|
||
|
placed the operation of the great engines which pump the
|
||
|
artificial atmosphere to all parts of Mars from the huge
|
||
|
atmosphere plant, the secret to whose mighty portals placed
|
||
|
in my possession the ability to save from immediate extinction
|
||
|
the life of a whole world.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The stone worn by the thern who confronted us was of
|
||
|
about the same size as that which I had seen before; an inch
|
||
|
in diameter I should say. It scintillated nine different and
|
||
|
distinct rays; the seven primary colours of our earthly prism
|
||
|
and the two rays which are unknown upon Earth, but whose
|
||
|
wondrous beauty is indescribable.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As the thern saw us his eyes narrowed to two nasty slits.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Stop!" he cried. "What means this, Thuvia?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
For answer the girl raised her revolver and fired point-
|
||
|
blank at him. Without a sound he sank to the earth, dead.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Beast!" she hissed. "After all these years I am at last revenged."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then as she turned toward me, evidently with a word of explanation
|
||
|
on her lips, her eyes suddenly widened as they rested upon me,
|
||
|
and with a little exclamation she started toward me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"O Prince," she cried, "Fate is indeed kind to us. The way
|
||
|
is still difficult, but through this vile thing upon the floor
|
||
|
we may yet win to the outer world. Notest thou not the
|
||
|
remarkable resemblance between this Holy Thern and thyself?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The man was indeed of my precise stature, nor were his
|
||
|
eyes and features unlike mine; but his hair was a mass of
|
||
|
flowing yellow locks, like those of the two I had killed,
|
||
|
while mine is black and close cropped.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What of the resemblance?" I asked the girl Thuvia. "Do
|
||
|
you wish me with my black, short hair to pose as a yellow-
|
||
|
haired priest of this infernal cult?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
She smiled, and for answer approached the body of the
|
||
|
man she had slain, and kneeling beside it removed the circlet
|
||
|
of gold from the forehead, and then to my utter amazement
|
||
|
lifted the entire scalp bodily from the corpse's head.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Rising, she advanced to my side and placing the yellow
|
||
|
wig over my black hair, crowned me with the golden circlet
|
||
|
set with the magnificent gem.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now don his harness, Prince," she said, "and you may pass
|
||
|
where you will in the realms of the therns, for Sator Throg
|
||
|
was a Holy Thern of the Tenth Cycle, and mighty among his kind."
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I stooped to the dead man to do her bidding I noted
|
||
|
that not a hair grew upon his head, which was quite as
|
||
|
bald as an egg.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They are all thus from birth," explained Thuvia noting my
|
||
|
surprise. "The race from which they sprang were crowned
|
||
|
with a luxuriant growth of golden hair, but for many ages
|
||
|
the present race has been entirely bald. The wig, however,
|
||
|
has come to be a part of their apparel, and so important a part
|
||
|
do they consider it that it is cause for the deepest disgrace
|
||
|
were a thern to appear in public without it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
In another moment I stood garbed in the habiliments of a Holy Thern.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At Thuvia's suggestion two of the released prisoners bore
|
||
|
the body of the dead thern upon their shoulders with us as
|
||
|
we continued our journey toward the storeroom, which we
|
||
|
reached without further mishap.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Here the keys which Thuvia bore from the dead thern of
|
||
|
the prison vault were the means of giving us immediate
|
||
|
entrance to the chamber, and very quickly we were
|
||
|
thoroughly outfitted with arms and ammunition.
|
||
|
|
||
|
By this time I was so thoroughly fagged out that I could
|
||
|
go no further, so I threw myself upon the floor, bidding Tars
|
||
|
Tarkas to do likewise, and cautioning two of the released
|
||
|
prisoners to keep careful watch.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In an instant I was asleep.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER V
|
||
|
|
||
|
CORRIDORS OF PERIL
|
||
|
|
||
|
How long I slept upon the floor of the storeroom I do not
|
||
|
know, but it must have been many hours.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was awakened with a start by cries of alarm, and scarce
|
||
|
were my eyes opened, nor had I yet sufficiently collected my
|
||
|
wits to quite realize where I was, when a fusillade of shots
|
||
|
rang out, reverberating through the subterranean corridors in
|
||
|
a series of deafening echoes.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In an instant I was upon my feet. A dozen lesser therns
|
||
|
confronted us from a large doorway at the opposite end of
|
||
|
the storeroom from which we had entered. About me lay the
|
||
|
bodies of my companions, with the exception of Thuvia and
|
||
|
Tars Tarkas, who, like myself, had been asleep upon the floor
|
||
|
and thus escaped the first raking fire.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I gained my feet the therns lowered their wicked rifles, their
|
||
|
faces distorted in mingled chagrin, consternation, and alarm.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Instantly I rose to the occasion.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What means this?" I cried in tones of fierce anger. "Is Sator Throg
|
||
|
to be murdered by his own vassals?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Have mercy, O Master of the Tenth Cycle!" cried one of
|
||
|
the fellows, while the others edged toward the doorway as
|
||
|
though to attempt a surreptitious escape from the presence
|
||
|
of the mighty one.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ask them their mission here," whispered Thuvia at my elbow.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What do you here, fellows?" I cried.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Two from the outer world are at large within the dominions
|
||
|
of the therns. We sought them at the command of the Father
|
||
|
of Therns. One was white with black hair, the other a
|
||
|
huge green warrior," and here the fellow cast a suspicious
|
||
|
glance toward Tars Tarkas.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Here, then, is one of them," spoke Thuvia, indicating the
|
||
|
Thark, "and if you will look upon this dead man by the door
|
||
|
perhaps you will recognize the other. It was left for Sator
|
||
|
Throg and his poor slaves to accomplish what the lesser
|
||
|
therns of the guard were unable to do--we have killed one
|
||
|
and captured the other; for this had Sator Throg given us
|
||
|
our liberty. And now in your stupidity have you come and
|
||
|
killed all but myself, and like to have killed the mighty
|
||
|
Sator Throg himself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The men looked very sheepish and very scared.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Had they not better throw these bodies to the plant men
|
||
|
and then return to their quarters, O Mighty One?" asked
|
||
|
Thuvia of me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes; do as Thuvia bids you," I said.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As the men picked up the bodies I noticed that the one
|
||
|
who stooped to gather up the late Sator Throg started as his
|
||
|
closer scrutiny fell upon the upturned face, and then the
|
||
|
fellow stole a furtive, sneaking glance in my direction from
|
||
|
the corner of his eye.
|
||
|
|
||
|
That he suspicioned something of the truth I could have sworn;
|
||
|
but that it was only a suspicion which he did not dare voice was
|
||
|
evidenced by his silence.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Again, as he bore the body from the room, he shot a quick
|
||
|
but searching glance toward me, and then his eyes fell once
|
||
|
more upon the bald and shiny dome of the dead man in his
|
||
|
arms. The last fleeting glimpse that I obtained of his profile
|
||
|
as he passed from my sight without the chamber revealed a
|
||
|
cunning smile of triumph upon his lips.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Only Tars Tarkas, Thuvia, and I were left. The fatal
|
||
|
marksmanship of the therns had snatched from our companions
|
||
|
whatever slender chance they had of gaining the perilous
|
||
|
freedom of the world without.
|
||
|
|
||
|
So soon as the last of the gruesome procession had disappeared
|
||
|
the girl urged us to take up our flight once more.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She, too, had noted the questioning attitude of the thern
|
||
|
who had borne Sator Throg away.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It bodes no good for us, O Prince," she said. "For even
|
||
|
though this fellow dared not chance accusing you in error,
|
||
|
there be those above with power sufficient to demand a closer
|
||
|
scrutiny, and that, Prince would indeed prove fatal."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I shrugged my shoulders. It seemed that in any event the
|
||
|
outcome of our plight must end in death. I was refreshed from
|
||
|
my sleep, but still weak from loss of blood. My wounds were
|
||
|
painful. No medicinal aid seemed possible. How I longed
|
||
|
for the almost miraculous healing power of the strange salves
|
||
|
and lotions of the green Martian women. In an hour they
|
||
|
would have had me as new.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was discouraged. Never had a feeling of such utter hopelessness
|
||
|
come over me in the face of danger. Then the long flowing, yellow
|
||
|
locks of the Holy Thern, caught by some vagrant draught, blew
|
||
|
about my face.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Might they not still open the way of freedom? If we acted
|
||
|
in time, might we not even yet escape before the general
|
||
|
alarm was sounded? We could at least try.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What will the fellow do first, Thuvia?" I asked. "How long
|
||
|
will it be before they may return for us?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He will go directly to the Father of Therns, old Matai
|
||
|
Shang. He may have to wait for an audience, but since he is
|
||
|
very high among the lesser therns, in fact as a thorian among
|
||
|
them, it will not be long that Matai Shang will keep him waiting.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then if the Father of Therns puts credence in his story,
|
||
|
another hour will see the galleries and chambers, the courts
|
||
|
and gardens, filled with searchers."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What we do then must be done within an hour. What is the
|
||
|
best way, Thuvia, the shortest way out of this celestial Hades?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Straight to the top of the cliffs, Prince," she replied, "and
|
||
|
then through the gardens to the inner courts. From there our
|
||
|
way will lie within the temples of the therns and across them to
|
||
|
the outer court. Then the ramparts--O Prince, it is hopeless.
|
||
|
Ten thousand warriors could not hew a way to liberty from out
|
||
|
this awful place.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Since the beginning of time, little by little, stone by stone,
|
||
|
have the therns been ever adding to the defences of their
|
||
|
stronghold. A continuous line of impregnable fortifications
|
||
|
circles the outer slopes of the Mountains of Otz.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Within the temples that lie behind the ramparts a million
|
||
|
fighting-men are ever ready. The courts and gardens are
|
||
|
filled with slaves, with women and with children.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"None could go a stone's throw without detection."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If there is no other way, Thuvia, why dwell upon the
|
||
|
difficulties of this. We must face them."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Can we not better make the attempt after dark?" asked
|
||
|
Tars Tarkas. "There would seem to be no chance by day."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There would be a little better chance by night, but even
|
||
|
then the ramparts are well guarded; possibly better than by
|
||
|
day. There are fewer abroad in the courts and gardens,
|
||
|
though," said Thuvia.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What is the hour?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It was midnight when you released me from my chains,"
|
||
|
said Thuvia. "Two hours later we reached the storeroom.
|
||
|
There you slept for fourteen hours. It must now be nearly
|
||
|
sundown again. Come, we will go to some nearby window in
|
||
|
the cliff and make sure."
|
||
|
|
||
|
So saying, she led the way through winding corridors
|
||
|
until at a sudden turn we came upon an opening which
|
||
|
overlooked the Valley Dor.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At our right the sun was setting, a huge red orb, below the
|
||
|
western range of Otz. A little below us stood the Holy Thern
|
||
|
on watch upon his balcony. His scarlet robe of office was
|
||
|
pulled tightly about him in anticipation of the cold that comes
|
||
|
so suddenly with darkness as the sun sets. So rare is the
|
||
|
atmosphere of Mars that it absorbs very little heat from the
|
||
|
sun. During the daylight hours it is always extremely hot; at
|
||
|
night it is intensely cold. Nor does the thin atmosphere
|
||
|
refract the sun's rays or diffuse its light as upon Earth.
|
||
|
There is no twilight on Mars. When the great orb of day disappears
|
||
|
beneath the horizon the effect is precisely as that of the
|
||
|
extinguishing of a single lamp within a chamber. From brilliant
|
||
|
light you are plunged without warning into utter darkness.
|
||
|
Then the moons come; the mysterious, magic moons of Mars,
|
||
|
hurtling like monster meteors low across the face of the planet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The declining sun lighted brilliantly the eastern banks of
|
||
|
Korus, the crimson sward, the gorgeous forest. Beneath the
|
||
|
trees we saw feeding many herds of plant men. The adults
|
||
|
stood aloft upon their toes and their mighty tails, their talons
|
||
|
pruning every available leaf and twig. It was then that I
|
||
|
understood the careful trimming of the trees which had led
|
||
|
me to form the mistaken idea when first I opened my eyes upon
|
||
|
the grove that it was the playground of a civilized people.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As we watched, our eyes wandered to the rolling Iss,
|
||
|
which issued from the base of the cliffs beneath us.
|
||
|
Presently there emerged from the mountain a canoe laden with
|
||
|
lost souls from the outer world. There were a dozen of them.
|
||
|
All were of the highly civilized and cultured race of red men
|
||
|
who are dominant on Mars.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The eyes of the herald upon the balcony beneath us fell
|
||
|
upon the doomed party as soon as did ours. He raised his
|
||
|
head and leaning far out over the low rail that rimmed his
|
||
|
dizzy perch, voiced the shrill, weird wail that called the
|
||
|
demons of this hellish place to the attack.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For an instant the brutes stood with stiffly erected ears, then
|
||
|
they poured from the grove toward the river's bank, covering
|
||
|
the distance with great, ungainly leaps.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The party had landed and was standing on the sward as
|
||
|
the awful horde came in sight. There was a brief and futile
|
||
|
effort of defence. Then silence as the huge, repulsive shapes
|
||
|
covered the bodies of their victims and scores of sucking
|
||
|
mouths fastened themselves to the flesh of their prey.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I turned away in disgust.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Their part is soon over," said Thuvia. "The great white apes
|
||
|
get the flesh when the plant men have drained the arteries.
|
||
|
Look, they are coming now."
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I turned my eyes in the direction the girl indicated, I
|
||
|
saw a dozen of the great white monsters running across the
|
||
|
valley toward the river bank. Then the sun went down and
|
||
|
darkness that could almost be felt engulfed us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Thuvia lost no time in leading us toward the corridor
|
||
|
which winds back and forth up through the cliffs toward the
|
||
|
surface thousands of feet above the level on which we had been.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Twice great banths, wandering loose through the galleries,
|
||
|
blocked our progress, but in each instance Thuvia spoke a low
|
||
|
word of command and the snarling beasts slunk sullenly away.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If you can dissolve all our obstacles as easily as you
|
||
|
master these fierce brutes I can see no difficulties in our way,"
|
||
|
I said to the girl, smiling. "How do you do it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
She laughed, and then shuddered.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do not quite know," she said. "When first I came here I
|
||
|
angered Sator Throg, because I repulsed him. He ordered me
|
||
|
to be thrown into one of the great pits in the inner gardens.
|
||
|
It was filled with banths. In my own country I had been
|
||
|
accustomed to command. Something in my voice, I do not
|
||
|
know what, cowed the beasts as they sprang to attack me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Instead of tearing me to pieces, as Sator Throg had
|
||
|
desired, they fawned at my feet. So greatly were Sator Throg
|
||
|
and his friends amused by the sight that they kept me to train
|
||
|
and handle the terrible creatures. I know them all by name.
|
||
|
There are many of them wandering through these lower regions.
|
||
|
They are the scavengers. Many prisoners die here in their chains.
|
||
|
The banths solve the problem of sanitation, at least in this respect.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In the gardens and temples above they are kept in pits.
|
||
|
The therns fear them. It is because of the banths that they
|
||
|
seldom venture below ground except as their duties call them."
|
||
|
|
||
|
An idea occurred to me, suggested by what Thuvia had just said.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why not take a number of banths and set them loose before us
|
||
|
above ground?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Thuvia laughed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It would distract attention from us, I am sure," she said.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She commenced calling in a low singsong voice that was
|
||
|
half purr. She continued this as we wound our tedious way
|
||
|
through the maze of subterranean passages and chambers.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Presently soft, padded feet sounded close behind us, and
|
||
|
as I turned I saw a pair of great, green eyes shining in the
|
||
|
dark shadows at our rear. From a diverging tunnel a sinuous,
|
||
|
tawny form crept stealthily toward us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Low growls and angry snarls assailed our ears on every
|
||
|
side as we hastened on and one by one the ferocious
|
||
|
creatures answered the call of their mistress.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She spoke a word to each as it joined us. Like well-
|
||
|
schooled terriers, they paced the corridors with us, but I
|
||
|
could not help but note the lathering jowls, nor the hungry
|
||
|
expressions with which they eyed Tars Tarkas and myself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Soon we were entirely surrounded by some fifty of the
|
||
|
brutes. Two walked close on either side of Thuvia, as guards
|
||
|
might walk. The sleek sides of others now and then touched
|
||
|
my own naked limbs. It was a strange experience; the
|
||
|
almost noiseless passage of naked human feet and padded
|
||
|
paws; the golden walls splashed with precious stones; the
|
||
|
dim light cast by the tiny radium bulbs set at considerable
|
||
|
distances along the roof; the huge, maned beasts of prey
|
||
|
crowding with low growls about us; the mighty green warrior
|
||
|
towering high above us all; myself crowned with the priceless
|
||
|
diadem of a Holy Thern; and leading the procession the
|
||
|
beautiful girl, Thuvia.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I shall not soon forget it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Presently we approached a great chamber more brightly
|
||
|
lighted than the corridors. Thuvia halted us. Quietly she
|
||
|
stole toward the entrance and glanced within. Then she
|
||
|
motioned us to follow her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The room was filled with specimens of the strange beings
|
||
|
that inhabit this underworld; a heterogeneous collection of
|
||
|
hybrids--the offspring of the prisoners from the outside
|
||
|
world; red and green Martians and the white race of therns.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Constant confinement below ground had wrought odd freaks
|
||
|
upon their skins. They more resemble corpses than living
|
||
|
beings. Many are deformed, others maimed, while the
|
||
|
majority, Thuvia explained, are sightless.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As they lay sprawled about the floor, sometimes overlapping
|
||
|
one another, again in heaps of several bodies, they suggested
|
||
|
instantly to me the grotesque illustrations that I had
|
||
|
seen in copies of Dante's INFERNO, and what more fitting
|
||
|
comparison? Was this not indeed a veritable hell, peopled
|
||
|
by lost souls, dead and damned beyond all hope?
|
||
|
|
||
|
Picking our way carefully we threaded a winding path
|
||
|
across the chamber, the great banths sniffing hungrily at
|
||
|
the tempting prey spread before them in such tantalizing and
|
||
|
defenceless profusion.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Several times we passed the entrances to other chambers similarly
|
||
|
peopled, and twice again we were compelled to cross directly
|
||
|
through them. In others were chained prisoners and beasts.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why is it that we see no therns?" I asked of Thuvia.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They seldom traverse the underworld at night, for
|
||
|
then it is that the great banths prowl the dim corridors
|
||
|
seeking their prey. The therns fear the awful denizens of
|
||
|
this cruel and hopeless world that they have fostered and allowed
|
||
|
to grow beneath their feet. The prisoners even sometimes turn
|
||
|
upon them and rend them. The thern can never tell from
|
||
|
what dark shadow an assassin may spring upon his back.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"By day it is different. Then the corridors and chambers
|
||
|
are filled with guards passing to and fro; slaves from the
|
||
|
temples above come by hundreds to the granaries and
|
||
|
storerooms. All is life then. You did not see it because I led
|
||
|
you not in the beaten tracks, but through roundabout passages
|
||
|
seldom used. Yet it is possible that we may meet a thern even yet.
|
||
|
They do occasionally find it necessary to come here after the sun has set.
|
||
|
Because of this I have moved with such great caution."
|
||
|
|
||
|
But we reached the upper galleries without detection and
|
||
|
presently Thuvia halted us at the foot of a short, steep ascent.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Above us," she said, "is a doorway which opens on to
|
||
|
the inner gardens. I have brought you thus far. From here
|
||
|
on for four miles to the outer ramparts our way will be beset
|
||
|
by countless dangers. Guards patrol the courts, the temples,
|
||
|
the gardens. Every inch of the ramparts themselves is
|
||
|
beneath the eye of a sentry."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I could not understand the necessity for such an enormous
|
||
|
force of armed men about a spot so surrounded by mystery
|
||
|
and superstition that not a soul upon Barsoom would have
|
||
|
dared to approach it even had they known its exact location.
|
||
|
I questioned Thuvia, asking her what enemies the therns could
|
||
|
fear in their impregnable fortress.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We had reached the doorway now and Thuvia was opening it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They fear the black pirates of Barsoom, O Prince," she
|
||
|
said, "from whom may our first ancestors preserve us."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The door swung open; the smell of growing things greeted
|
||
|
my nostrils; the cool night air blew against my cheek. The
|
||
|
great banths sniffed the unfamiliar odours, and then with a
|
||
|
rush they broke past us with low growls, swarming across the
|
||
|
gardens beneath the lurid light of the nearer moon.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Suddenly a great cry arose from the roofs of the temples;
|
||
|
a cry of alarm and warning that, taken up from point to
|
||
|
point, ran off to the east and to the west, from temple, court,
|
||
|
and rampart, until it sounded as a dim echo in the distance.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The great Thark's long-sword leaped from its scabbard;
|
||
|
Thuvia shrank shuddering to my side.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER VI
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE BLACK PIRATES OF BARSOOM
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What is it?" I asked of the girl.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For answer she pointed to the sky.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I looked, and there, above us, I saw shadowy bodies flitting
|
||
|
hither and thither high over temple, court, and garden.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Almost immediately flashes of light broke from these strange
|
||
|
objects. There was a roar of musketry, and then answering
|
||
|
flashes and roars from temple and rampart.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The black pirates of Barsoom, O Prince," said Thuvia.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In great circles the air craft of the marauders swept lower
|
||
|
and lower toward the defending forces of the therns.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Volley after volley they vomited upon the temple guards;
|
||
|
volley on volley crashed through the thin air toward the
|
||
|
fleeting and illusive fliers.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As the pirates swooped closer toward the ground, thern
|
||
|
soldiery poured from the temples into the gardens and courts.
|
||
|
The sight of them in the open brought a score of fliers
|
||
|
darting toward us from all directions.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The therns fired upon them through shields affixed to their
|
||
|
rifles, but on, steadily on, came the grim, black craft. They
|
||
|
were small fliers for the most part, built for two to three men.
|
||
|
A few larger ones there were, but these kept high aloft dropping
|
||
|
bombs upon the temples from their keel batteries.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At length, with a concerted rush, evidently in response to a
|
||
|
signal of command, the pirates in our immediate vicinity
|
||
|
dashed recklessly to the ground in the very midst of the
|
||
|
thern soldiery.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Scarcely waiting for their craft to touch, the creatures
|
||
|
manning them leaped among the therns with the fury of
|
||
|
demons. Such fighting! Never had I witnessed its like before.
|
||
|
I had thought the green Martians the most ferocious warriors
|
||
|
in the universe, but the awful abandon with which the black
|
||
|
pirates threw themselves upon their foes transcended everything
|
||
|
I ever before had seen.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Beneath the brilliant light of Mars' two glorious moons the
|
||
|
whole scene presented itself in vivid distinctness. The golden-
|
||
|
haired, white-skinned therns battling with desperate courage
|
||
|
in hand-to-hand conflict with their ebony-skinned foemen.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Here a little knot of struggling warriors trampled a bed of
|
||
|
gorgeous pimalia; there the curved sword of a black man
|
||
|
found the heart of a thern and left its dead foeman at the
|
||
|
foot of a wondrous statue carved from a living ruby; yonder
|
||
|
a dozen therns pressed a single pirate back upon a bench of
|
||
|
emerald, upon whose iridescent surface a strangely beautiful
|
||
|
Barsoomian design was traced out in inlaid diamonds.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A little to one side stood Thuvia, the Thark, and I. The tide
|
||
|
of battle had not reached us, but the fighters from time to
|
||
|
time swung close enough that we might distinctly note them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The black pirates interested me immensely. I had heard
|
||
|
vague rumours, little more than legends they were, during
|
||
|
my former life on Mars; but never had I seen them, nor
|
||
|
talked with one who had.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They were popularly supposed to inhabit the lesser moon,
|
||
|
from which they descended upon Barsoom at long intervals.
|
||
|
Where they visited they wrought the most horrible atrocities,
|
||
|
and when they left carried away with them firearms and
|
||
|
ammunition, and young girls as prisoners. These latter,
|
||
|
the rumour had it, they sacrificed to some terrible god
|
||
|
in an orgy which ended in the eating of their victims.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had an excellent opportunity to examine them, as the
|
||
|
strife occasionally brought now one and now another close
|
||
|
to where I stood. They were large men, possibly six feet and
|
||
|
over in height. Their features were clear cut and handsome
|
||
|
in the extreme; their eyes were well set and large, though a
|
||
|
slight narrowness lent them a crafty appearance; the iris, as
|
||
|
well as I could determine by moonlight, was of extreme
|
||
|
blackness, while the eyeball itself was quite white and clear.
|
||
|
The physical structure of their bodies seemed identical with
|
||
|
those of the therns, the red men, and my own. Only in the
|
||
|
colour of their skin did they differ materially from us; that
|
||
|
is of the appearance of polished ebony, and odd as it
|
||
|
may seem for a Southerner to say it, adds to rather than
|
||
|
detracts from their marvellous beauty.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But if their bodies are divine, their hearts, apparently,
|
||
|
are quite the reverse. Never did I witness such a malign lust
|
||
|
for blood as these demons of the outer air evinced in their
|
||
|
mad battle with the therns.
|
||
|
|
||
|
All about us in the garden lay their sinister craft, which
|
||
|
the therns for some reason, then unaccountable to me, made
|
||
|
no effort to injure. Now and again a black warrior would
|
||
|
rush from a near by temple bearing a young woman in his arms.
|
||
|
Straight for his flier he would leap while those of his
|
||
|
comrades who fought near by would rush to cover his escape.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The therns on their side would hasten to rescue the girl,
|
||
|
and in an instant the two would be swallowed in the vortex
|
||
|
of a maelstrom of yelling devils, hacking and hewing at
|
||
|
one another, like fiends incarnate.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But always, it seemed, were the black pirates of Barsoom
|
||
|
victorious, and the girl, brought miraculously unharmed
|
||
|
through the conflict, borne away into the outer darkness
|
||
|
upon the deck of a swift flier.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Fighting similar to that which surrounded us could be
|
||
|
heard in both directions as far as sound carried, and Thuvia
|
||
|
told me that the attacks of the black pirates were usually
|
||
|
made simultaneously along the entire ribbon-like domain of
|
||
|
the therns, which circles the Valley Dor on the outer slopes
|
||
|
of the Mountains of Otz.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As the fighting receded from our position for a moment,
|
||
|
Thuvia turned toward me with a question.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do you understand now, O Prince," she said, "why a million
|
||
|
warriors guard the domains of the Holy Therns by day and by night?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The scene you are witnessing now is but a repetition of
|
||
|
what I have seen enacted a score of times during the fifteen
|
||
|
years I have been a prisoner here. From time immemorial
|
||
|
the black pirates of Barsoom have preyed upon the Holy Therns.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yet they never carry their expeditions to a point, as one
|
||
|
might readily believe it was in their power to do, where the
|
||
|
extermination of the race of therns is threatened. It is as
|
||
|
though they but utilized the race as playthings, with which
|
||
|
they satisfy their ferocious lust for fighting; and from whom
|
||
|
they collect toll in arms and ammunition and in prisoners."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why don't they jump in and destroy these fliers?" I asked.
|
||
|
"That would soon put a stop to the attacks, or at least the
|
||
|
blacks would scarce be so bold. Why, see how perfectly
|
||
|
unguarded they leave their craft, as though they were
|
||
|
lying safe in their own hangars at home."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The therns do not dare. They tried it once, ages ago, but
|
||
|
the next night and for a whole moon thereafter a thousand
|
||
|
great black battleships circled the Mountains of Otz, pouring
|
||
|
tons of projectiles upon the temples, the gardens, and the
|
||
|
courts, until every thern who was not killed was driven
|
||
|
for safety into the subterranean galleries.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The therns know that they live at all only by the sufferance
|
||
|
of the black men. They were near to extermination that once
|
||
|
and they will not venture risking it again."
|
||
|
|
||
|
As she ceased talking a new element was instilled into the
|
||
|
conflict. It came from a source equally unlooked for by
|
||
|
either thern or pirate. The great banths which we had
|
||
|
liberated in the garden had evidently been awed at first
|
||
|
by the sound of the battle, the yelling of the warriors
|
||
|
and the loud report of rifle and bomb.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But now they must have become angered by the continuous
|
||
|
noise and excited by the smell of new blood, for all of
|
||
|
a sudden a great form shot from a clump of low shrubbery
|
||
|
into the midst of a struggling mass of humanity. A horrid
|
||
|
scream of bestial rage broke from the banth as he felt warm
|
||
|
flesh beneath his powerful talons.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As though his cry was but a signal to the others, the
|
||
|
entire great pack hurled themselves among the fighters.
|
||
|
Panic reigned in an instant. Thern and black man turned alike
|
||
|
against the common enemy, for the banths showed no partiality
|
||
|
toward either.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The awful beasts bore down a hundred men by the mere
|
||
|
weight of their great bodies as they hurled themselves into
|
||
|
the thick of the fight. Leaping and clawing, they mowed down
|
||
|
the warriors with their powerful paws, turning for an instant
|
||
|
to rend their victims with frightful fangs.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The scene was fascinating in its terribleness, but suddenly
|
||
|
it came to me that we were wasting valuable time watching this
|
||
|
conflict, which in itself might prove a means of our escape.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The therns were so engaged with their terrible assailants
|
||
|
that now, if ever, escape should be comparatively easy. I
|
||
|
turned to search for an opening through the contending
|
||
|
hordes. If we could but reach the ramparts we might find
|
||
|
that the pirates somewhere had thinned the guarding forces
|
||
|
and left a way open to us to the world without.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As my eyes wandered about the garden, the sight of the
|
||
|
hundreds of air craft lying unguarded around us suggested the
|
||
|
simplest avenue to freedom. Why it had not occurred to me
|
||
|
before! I was thoroughly familiar with the mechanism of
|
||
|
every known make of flier on Barsoom. For nine years I
|
||
|
had sailed and fought with the navy of Helium. I had raced
|
||
|
through space on the tiny one-man air scout and I had
|
||
|
commanded the greatest battleship that ever had floated
|
||
|
in the thin air of dying Mars.
|
||
|
|
||
|
To think, with me, is to act. Grasping Thuvia by the arm,
|
||
|
I whispered to Tars Tarkas to follow me. Quickly we glided
|
||
|
toward a small flier which lay furthest from the battling
|
||
|
warriors. Another instant found us huddled on the tiny
|
||
|
deck. My hand was on the starting lever. I pressed my thumb
|
||
|
upon the button which controls the ray of repulsion, that
|
||
|
splendid discovery of the Martians which permits them to navigate
|
||
|
the thin atmosphere of their planet in huge ships that dwarf the
|
||
|
dreadnoughts of our earthly navies into pitiful significance.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The craft swayed slightly but she did not move. Then a
|
||
|
new cry of warning broke upon our ears. Turning, I saw a
|
||
|
dozen black pirates dashing toward us from the melee. We
|
||
|
had been discovered. With shrieks of rage the demons
|
||
|
sprang for us. With frenzied insistence I continued to press
|
||
|
the little button which should have sent us racing out into
|
||
|
space, but still the vessel refused to budge. Then it came to
|
||
|
me--the reason that she would not rise.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We had stumbled upon a two-man flier. Its ray tanks
|
||
|
were charged only with sufficient repulsive energy to lift
|
||
|
two ordinary men. The Thark's great weight was anchoring
|
||
|
us to our doom.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The blacks were nearly upon us. There was not an instant
|
||
|
to be lost in hesitation or doubt.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I pressed the button far in and locked it. Then I set the
|
||
|
lever at high speed and as the blacks came yelling upon us
|
||
|
I slipped from the craft's deck and with drawn long-sword
|
||
|
met the attack.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At the same moment a girl's shriek rang out behind me
|
||
|
and an instant later, as the blacks fell upon me. I heard
|
||
|
far above my head, and faintly, in Thuvia's voice: "My
|
||
|
Prince, O my Prince; I would rather remain and die with--"
|
||
|
But the rest was lost in the noise of my assailants.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I knew though that my ruse had worked and that temporarily
|
||
|
at least Thuvia and Tars Tarkas were safe, and the means of
|
||
|
escape was theirs.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For a moment it seemed that I could not withstand the
|
||
|
weight of numbers that confronted me, but again, as on so
|
||
|
many other occasions when I had been called upon to face
|
||
|
fearful odds upon this planet of warriors and fierce beasts,
|
||
|
I found that my earthly strength so far transcended that of
|
||
|
my opponents that the odds were not so greatly against me
|
||
|
as they appeared.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My seething blade wove a net of death about me. For an
|
||
|
instant the blacks pressed close to reach me with their shorter
|
||
|
swords, but presently they gave back, and the esteem in which
|
||
|
they suddenly had learned to hold my sword arm was writ
|
||
|
large upon each countenance.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I knew though that it was but a question of minutes
|
||
|
before their greater numbers would wear me down, or get
|
||
|
around my guard. I must go down eventually to certain death
|
||
|
before them. I shuddered at the thought of it, dying thus in
|
||
|
this terrible place where no word of my end ever could
|
||
|
reach my Dejah Thoris. Dying at the hands of nameless
|
||
|
black men in the gardens of the cruel therns.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then my old-time spirit reasserted itself. The fighting blood
|
||
|
of my Virginian sires coursed hot through my veins. The
|
||
|
fierce blood lust and the joy of battle surged over me. The
|
||
|
fighting smile that has brought consternation to a thousand
|
||
|
foemen touched my lips. I put the thought of death out of
|
||
|
my mind, and fell upon my antagonists with fury that those
|
||
|
who escaped will remember to their dying day.
|
||
|
|
||
|
That others would press to the support of those who faced
|
||
|
me I knew, so even as I fought I kept my wits at work,
|
||
|
searching for an avenue of escape.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It came from an unexpected quarter out of the black night
|
||
|
behind me. I had just disarmed a huge fellow who had
|
||
|
given me a desperate struggle, and for a moment the blacks
|
||
|
stood back for a breathing spell.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They eyed me with malignant fury, yet withal there was
|
||
|
a touch of respect in their demeanour.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Thern," said one, "you fight like a Dator. But for your
|
||
|
detestable yellow hair and your white skin you would be an
|
||
|
honour to the First Born of Barsoom."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am no thern," I said, and was about to explain that I was
|
||
|
from another world, thinking that by patching a truce with
|
||
|
these fellows and fighting with them against the therns I
|
||
|
might enlist their aid in regaining my liberty. But just at that
|
||
|
moment a heavy object smote me a resounding whack between
|
||
|
my shoulders that nearly felled me to the ground.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I turned to meet this new enemy an object passed over
|
||
|
my shoulder, striking one of my assailants squarely in the
|
||
|
face and knocking him senseless to the sward. At the same
|
||
|
instant I saw that the thing that had struck us was the
|
||
|
trailing anchor of a rather fair-sized air vessel; possibly
|
||
|
a ten man cruiser.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The ship was floating slowly above us, not more than fifty
|
||
|
feet over our heads. Instantly the one chance for escape that
|
||
|
it offered presented itself to me. The vessel was slowly rising
|
||
|
and now the anchor was beyond the blacks who faced me
|
||
|
and several feet above their heads.
|
||
|
|
||
|
With a bound that left them gaping in wide-eyed astonishment
|
||
|
I sprang completely over them. A second leap carried me just
|
||
|
high enough to grasp the now rapidly receding anchor.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But I was successful, and there I hung by one hand, dragging
|
||
|
through the branches of the higher vegetation of the gardens,
|
||
|
while my late foemen shrieked and howled beneath me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Presently the vessel veered toward the west and then
|
||
|
swung gracefully to the south. In another instant I was
|
||
|
carried beyond the crest of the Golden Cliffs, out over the
|
||
|
Valley Dor, where, six thousand feet below me, the Lost Sea
|
||
|
of Korus lay shimmering in the moonlight.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Carefully I climbed to a sitting posture across the anchor's
|
||
|
arms. I wondered if by chance the vessel might be deserted.
|
||
|
I hoped so. Or possibly it might belong to a friendly people,
|
||
|
and have wandered by accident almost within the clutches
|
||
|
of the pirates and the therns. The fact that it was retreating
|
||
|
from the scene of battle lent colour to this hypothesis.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But I decided to know positively, and at once, so, with the
|
||
|
greatest caution, I commenced to climb slowly up the anchor
|
||
|
chain toward the deck above me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
One hand had just reached for the vessel's rail and found
|
||
|
it when a fierce black face was thrust over the side and
|
||
|
eyes filled with triumphant hate looked into mine.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER VII
|
||
|
|
||
|
A FAIR GODDESS
|
||
|
|
||
|
For an instant the black pirate and I remained motionless,
|
||
|
glaring into each other's eyes. Then a grim smile curled
|
||
|
the handsome lips above me, as an ebony hand came slowly
|
||
|
in sight from above the edge of the deck and the cold, hollow
|
||
|
eye of a revolver sought the centre of my forehead.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Simultaneously my free hand shot out for the black throat,
|
||
|
just within reach, and the ebony finger tightened on the trigger.
|
||
|
The pirate's hissing, "Die, cursed thern," was half choked
|
||
|
in his windpipe by my clutching fingers. The hammer fell
|
||
|
with a futile click upon an empty chamber.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Before he could fire again I had pulled him so far over
|
||
|
the edge of the deck that he was forced to drop his firearm
|
||
|
and clutch the rail with both hands.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My grasp upon his throat effectually prevented any outcry,
|
||
|
and so we struggled in grim silence; he to tear away from my
|
||
|
hold, I to drag him over to his death.
|
||
|
|
||
|
His face was taking on a livid hue, his eyes were bulging
|
||
|
from their sockets. It was evident to him that he soon must
|
||
|
die unless he tore loose from the steel fingers that were
|
||
|
choking the life from him. With a final effort he threw himself
|
||
|
further back upon the deck, at the same instant releasing his
|
||
|
hold upon the rail to tear frantically with both hands at my
|
||
|
fingers in an effort to drag them from his throat.
|
||
|
|
||
|
That little second was all that I awaited. With one mighty
|
||
|
downward surge I swept him clear of the deck. His falling
|
||
|
body came near to tearing me from the frail hold that my
|
||
|
single free hand had upon the anchor chain and plunging me
|
||
|
with him to the waters of the sea below.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I did not relinquish my grasp upon him, however, for I
|
||
|
knew that a single shriek from those lips as he hurtled to his
|
||
|
death in the silent waters of the sea would bring his comrades
|
||
|
from above to avenge him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Instead I held grimly to him, choking, ever choking, while
|
||
|
his frantic struggles dragged me lower and lower toward the
|
||
|
end of the chain.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Gradually his contortions became spasmodic, lessening by
|
||
|
degrees until they ceased entirely. Then I released my hold
|
||
|
upon him and in an instant he was swallowed by the black
|
||
|
shadows far below.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Again I climbed to the ship's rail. This time I succeeded in
|
||
|
raising my eyes to the level of the deck, where I could take a
|
||
|
careful survey of the conditions immediately confronting me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The nearer moon had passed below the horizon, but the
|
||
|
clear effulgence of the further satellite bathed the deck of the
|
||
|
cruiser, bringing into sharp relief the bodies of six or eight
|
||
|
black men sprawled about in sleep.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Huddled close to the base of a rapid fire gun was a young
|
||
|
white girl, securely bound. Her eyes were widespread in an
|
||
|
expression of horrified anticipation and fixed directly upon
|
||
|
me as I came in sight above the edge of the deck.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Unutterable relief instantly filled them as they fell upon the
|
||
|
mystic jewel which sparkled in the centre of my stolen headpiece.
|
||
|
She did not speak. Instead her eyes warned me to beware the
|
||
|
sleeping figures that surrounded her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Noiselessly I gained the deck. The girl nodded to me to approach her.
|
||
|
As I bent low she whispered to me to release her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I can aid you," she said, "and you will need all the aid
|
||
|
available when they awaken."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Some of them will awake in Korus," I replied smiling.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She caught the meaning of my words, and the cruelty of
|
||
|
her answering smile horrified me. One is not astonished by
|
||
|
cruelty in a hideous face, but when it touches the features of
|
||
|
a goddess whose fine-chiselled lineaments might more fittingly
|
||
|
portray love and beauty, the contrast is appalling.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Quickly I released her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Give me a revolver," she whispered. "I can use that upon
|
||
|
those your sword does not silence in time."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I did as she bid. Then I turned toward the distasteful work
|
||
|
that lay before me. This was no time for fine compunctions,
|
||
|
nor for a chivalry that these cruel demons would neither
|
||
|
appreciate nor reciprocate.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Stealthily I approached the nearest sleeper. When he
|
||
|
awoke he was well on his journey to the bosom of Korus.
|
||
|
His piercing shriek as consciousness returned to him came
|
||
|
faintly up to us from the black depths beneath.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The second awoke as I touched him, and, though I succeeded
|
||
|
in hurling him from the cruiser's deck, his wild cry of alarm
|
||
|
brought the remaining pirates to their feet. There were five of them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As they arose the girl's revolver spoke in sharp staccato
|
||
|
and one sank back to the deck again to rise no more.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The others rushed madly upon me with drawn swords. The girl
|
||
|
evidently dared not fire for fear of wounding me, but I saw her
|
||
|
sneak stealthily and cat-like toward the flank of the attackers.
|
||
|
Then they were on me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For a few minutes I experienced some of the hottest fighting I had
|
||
|
ever passed through. The quarters were too small for foot work.
|
||
|
It was stand your ground and give and take. At first I took
|
||
|
considerably more than I gave, but presently I got beneath one
|
||
|
fellow's guard and had the satisfaction of seeing him collapse
|
||
|
upon the deck.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The others redoubled their efforts. The crashing of their
|
||
|
blades upon mine raised a terrific din that might have been
|
||
|
heard for miles through the silent night. Sparks flew as steel
|
||
|
smote steel, and then there was the dull and sickening sound of a
|
||
|
shoulder bone parting beneath the keen edge of my Martian sword.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Three now faced me, but the girl was working her way to
|
||
|
a point that would soon permit her to reduce the number by
|
||
|
one at least. Then things happened with such amazing
|
||
|
rapidity that I can scarce comprehend even now all that took
|
||
|
place in that brief instant.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The three rushed me with the evident purpose of forcing
|
||
|
me back the few steps that would carry my body over the
|
||
|
rail into the void below. At the same instant the girl fired
|
||
|
and my sword arm made two moves. One man dropped with
|
||
|
a bullet in his brain; a sword flew clattering across the deck
|
||
|
and dropped over the edge beyond as I disarmed one of my
|
||
|
opponents and the third went down with my blade buried to
|
||
|
the hilt in his breast and three feet of it protruding from his
|
||
|
back, and falling wrenched the sword from my grasp.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Disarmed myself, I now faced my remaining foeman,
|
||
|
whose own sword lay somewhere thousands of feet below us,
|
||
|
lost in the Lost Sea.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The new conditions seemed to please my adversary, for a
|
||
|
smile of satisfaction bared his gleaming teeth as he rushed
|
||
|
at me bare-handed. The great muscles which rolled beneath his
|
||
|
glossy black hide evidently assured him that here was easy
|
||
|
prey, not worth the trouble of drawing the dagger from his harness.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I let him come almost upon me. Then I ducked beneath his
|
||
|
outstretched arms, at the same time sidestepping to the right.
|
||
|
Pivoting on my left toe, I swung a terrific right to his jaw,
|
||
|
and, like a felled ox, he dropped in his tracks.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A low, silvery laugh rang out behind me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are no thern," said the sweet voice of my companion,
|
||
|
"for all your golden locks or the harness of Sator Throg.
|
||
|
Never lived there upon all Barsoom before one who
|
||
|
could fight as you have fought this night. Who are you?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am John Carter, Prince of the House of Tardos
|
||
|
Mors, Jeddak of Helium," I replied. "And whom," I added,
|
||
|
"has the honour of serving been accorded me?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
She hesitated a moment before speaking. Then she asked:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are no thern. Are you an enemy of the therns?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have been in the territory of the therns for a day and a half.
|
||
|
During that entire time my life has been in constant danger.
|
||
|
I have been harassed and persecuted. Armed men and fierce beasts
|
||
|
have been set upon me. I had no quarrel with the therns before,
|
||
|
but can you wonder that I feel no great love for them now?
|
||
|
I have spoken."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She looked at me intently for several minutes before she replied.
|
||
|
It was as though she were attempting to read my inmost soul,
|
||
|
to judge my character and my standards of chivalry in that
|
||
|
long-drawn, searching gaze.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Apparently the inventory satisfied her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am Phaidor, daughter of Matai Shang, Holy Hekkador of the
|
||
|
Holy Therns, Father of Therns, Master of Life and Death
|
||
|
upon Barsoom, Brother of Issus, Prince of Life Eternal."
|
||
|
|
||
|
At that moment I noticed that the black I had dropped with
|
||
|
my fist was commencing to show signs of returning consciousness.
|
||
|
I sprang to his side. Stripping his harness from him I securely
|
||
|
bound his hands behind his back, and after similarly fastening
|
||
|
his feet tied him to a heavy gun carriage.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why not the simpler way?" asked Phaidor.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do not understand. What 'simpler way'?" I replied.
|
||
|
|
||
|
With a slight shrug of her lovely shoulders she made a
|
||
|
gesture with her hands personating the casting of something
|
||
|
over the craft's side.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am no murderer," I said. "I kill in self-defence only."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She looked at me narrowly. Then she puckered those divine
|
||
|
brows of hers, and shook her head. She could not comprehend.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, neither had my own Dejah Thoris been able to
|
||
|
understand what to her had seemed a foolish and dangerous
|
||
|
policy toward enemies. Upon Barsoom, quarter is neither
|
||
|
asked nor given, and each dead man means so much more
|
||
|
of the waning resources of this dying planet to be divided
|
||
|
amongst those who survive.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But there seemed a subtle difference here between the manner
|
||
|
in which this girl contemplated the dispatching of an enemy
|
||
|
and the tender-hearted regret of my own princess for the
|
||
|
stern necessity which demanded it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I think that Phaidor regretted the thrill that the spectacle
|
||
|
would have afforded her rather than the fact that my decision
|
||
|
left another enemy alive to threaten us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The man had now regained full possession of his faculties,
|
||
|
and was regarding us intently from where he lay bound upon
|
||
|
the deck. He was a handsome fellow, clean limbed and powerful,
|
||
|
with an intelligent face and features of such exquisite chiselling
|
||
|
that Adonis himself might have envied him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The vessel, unguided, had been moving slowly across the valley;
|
||
|
but now I thought it time to take the helm and direct her course.
|
||
|
Only in a very general way could I guess the location of the Valley Dor.
|
||
|
That it was far south of the equator was evident from the constellations,
|
||
|
but I was not sufficiently a Martian astronomer to come much closer than
|
||
|
a rough guess without the splendid charts and delicate instruments
|
||
|
with which, as an officer in the Heliumite Navy, I had formerly reckoned
|
||
|
the positions of the vessels on which I sailed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
That a northerly course would quickest lead me toward the
|
||
|
more settled portions of the planet immediately decided
|
||
|
the direction that I should steer. Beneath my hand the cruiser
|
||
|
swung gracefully about. Then the button which controlled
|
||
|
the repulsive rays sent us soaring far out into space.
|
||
|
With speed lever pulled to the last notch, we raced toward
|
||
|
the north as we rose ever farther and farther above that
|
||
|
terrible valley of death.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As we passed at a dizzy height over the narrow domains
|
||
|
of the therns the flash of powder far below bore mute
|
||
|
witness to the ferocity of the battle that still raged along
|
||
|
that cruel frontier. No sound of conflict reached our ears,
|
||
|
for in the rarefied atmosphere of our great altitude no sound wave
|
||
|
could penetrate; they were dissipated in thin air far below us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It became intensely cold. Breathing was difficult. The girl,
|
||
|
Phaidor, and the black pirate kept their eyes glued upon me.
|
||
|
At length the girl spoke.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Unconsciousness comes quickly at this altitude," she said quietly.
|
||
|
"Unless you are inviting death for us all you had best drop,
|
||
|
and that quickly."
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was no fear in her voice. It was as one might say:
|
||
|
"You had better carry an umbrella. It is going to rain."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I dropped the vessel quickly to a lower level. Nor was I a
|
||
|
moment too soon. The girl had swooned.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The black, too, was unconscious, while I, myself, retained
|
||
|
my senses, I think, only by sheer will. The one on whom all
|
||
|
responsibility rests is apt to endure the most.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We were swinging along low above the foothills of the
|
||
|
Otz. It was comparatively warm and there was plenty of air
|
||
|
for our starved lungs, so I was not surprised to see the
|
||
|
black open his eyes, and a moment later the girl also.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It was a close call," she said.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It has taught me two things though," I replied.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That even Phaidor, daughter of the Master of Life and
|
||
|
Death, is mortal," I said smiling.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There is immortality only in Issus," she replied. "And Issus
|
||
|
is for the race of therns alone. Thus am I immortal."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I caught a fleeting grin passing across the features of the
|
||
|
black as he heard her words. I did not then understand why
|
||
|
he smiled. Later I was to learn, and she, too, in a most
|
||
|
horrible manner.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If the other thing you have just learned," she continued,
|
||
|
"has led to as erroneous deductions as the first you are little
|
||
|
richer in knowledge than you were before."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The other," I replied, "is that our dusky friend here does
|
||
|
not hail from the nearer moon--he was like to have died at
|
||
|
a few thousand feet above Barsoom. Had we continued the
|
||
|
five thousand miles that lie between Thuria and the planet
|
||
|
he would have been but the frozen memory of a man."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Phaidor looked at the black in evident astonishment.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If you are not of Thuria, then where?" she asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He shrugged his shoulders and turned his eyes elsewhere,
|
||
|
but did not reply.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The girl stamped her little foot in a peremptory manner.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The daughter of Matai Shang is not accustomed to having her
|
||
|
queries remain unanswered," she said. "One of the lesser breed
|
||
|
should feel honoured that a member of the holy race that was born
|
||
|
to inherit life eternal should deign even to notice him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Again the black smiled that wicked, knowing smile.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Xodar, Dator of the First Born of Barsoom, is accustomed to
|
||
|
give commands, not to receive them," replied the black pirate.
|
||
|
Then, turning to me, "What are your intentions concerning me?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I intend taking you both back to Helium," I said.
|
||
|
"No harm will come to you. You will find the red men of
|
||
|
Helium a kindly and magnanimous race, but if they listen to
|
||
|
me there will be no more voluntary pilgrimages down the
|
||
|
river Iss, and the impossible belief that they have cherished
|
||
|
for ages will be shattered into a thousand pieces."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Are you of Helium?" he asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am a Prince of the House of Tardos Mors, Jeddak of Helium,"
|
||
|
I replied, "but I am not of Barsoom. I am of another world."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Xodar looked at me intently for a few moments.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I can well believe that you are not of Barsoom," he said
|
||
|
at length. "None of this world could have bested eight of the
|
||
|
First Born single-handed. But how is it that you wear the
|
||
|
golden hair and the jewelled circlet of a Holy Thern?" He
|
||
|
emphasized the word holy with a touch of irony.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I had forgotten them," I said. "They are the spoils of
|
||
|
conquest," and with a sweep of my hand I removed the
|
||
|
disguise from my head.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When the black's eyes fell on my close-cropped black hair
|
||
|
they opened in astonishment. Evidently he had looked for
|
||
|
the bald pate of a thern.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are indeed of another world," he said, a touch of
|
||
|
awe in his voice. "With the skin of a thern, the black hair of
|
||
|
a First Born and the muscles of a dozen Dators it was no
|
||
|
disgrace even for Xodar to acknowledge your supremacy.
|
||
|
A thing he could never do were you a Barsoomian," he added.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are travelling several laps ahead of me, my friend,"
|
||
|
I interrupted. "I glean that your name is Xodar, but whom,
|
||
|
pray, are the First Born, and what a Dator, and why, if you
|
||
|
were conquered by a Barsoomian, could you not acknowledge it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The First Born of Barsoom," he explained, "are the race
|
||
|
of black men of which I am a Dator, or, as the lesser
|
||
|
Barsoomians would say, Prince. My race is the oldest
|
||
|
on the planet. We trace our lineage, unbroken, direct to
|
||
|
the Tree of Life which flourished in the centre of the
|
||
|
Valley Dor twenty-three million years ago.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"For countless ages the fruit of this tree underwent the
|
||
|
gradual changes of evolution, passing by degrees from true
|
||
|
plant life to a combination of plant and animal. In the first
|
||
|
stages the fruit of the tree possessed only the power of
|
||
|
independent muscular action, while the stem remained attached
|
||
|
to the parent plant; later a brain developed in the fruit, so
|
||
|
that hanging there by their long stems they thought and
|
||
|
moved as individuals.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then, with the development of perceptions came a comparison
|
||
|
of them; judgments were reached and compared, and thus reason
|
||
|
and the power to reason were born upon Barsoom.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ages passed. Many forms of life came and went upon
|
||
|
the Tree of Life, but still all were attached to the parent
|
||
|
plant by stems of varying lengths. At length the fruit tree
|
||
|
consisted in tiny plant men, such as we now see reproduced
|
||
|
in such huge dimensions in the Valley Dor, but still hanging
|
||
|
to the limbs and branches of the tree by the stems which
|
||
|
grew from the tops of their heads.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The buds from which the plant men blossomed resembled
|
||
|
large nuts about a foot in diameter, divided by double
|
||
|
partition walls into four sections. In one section grew the plant
|
||
|
man, in another a sixteen-legged worm, in the third the
|
||
|
progenitor of the white ape and in the fourth the primaeval
|
||
|
black man of Barsoom.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"When the bud burst the plant man remained dangling at
|
||
|
the end of his stem, but the three other sections fell to the
|
||
|
ground, where the efforts of their imprisoned occupants to
|
||
|
escape sent them hopping about in all directions.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Thus as time went on, all Barsoom was covered with
|
||
|
these imprisoned creatures. For countless ages they lived their
|
||
|
long lives within their hard shells, hopping and skipping about
|
||
|
the broad planet; falling into rivers, lakes, and seas, to be still
|
||
|
further spread about the surface of the new world.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Countless billions died before the first black man broke
|
||
|
through his prison walls into the light of day. Prompted by
|
||
|
curiosity, he broke open other shells and the peopling of
|
||
|
Barsoom commenced.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The pure strain of the blood of this first black man has
|
||
|
remained untainted by admixture with other creatures in the
|
||
|
race of which I am a member; but from the sixteen-legged
|
||
|
worm, the first ape and renegade black man has sprung every
|
||
|
other form of animal life upon Barsoom.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The therns," and he smiled maliciously as he spoke, "are
|
||
|
but the result of ages of evolution from the pure white ape
|
||
|
of antiquity. They are a lower order still. There is but one
|
||
|
race of true and immortal humans on Barsoom. It is the
|
||
|
race of black men.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The Tree of Life is dead, but before it died the plant
|
||
|
men learned to detach themselves from it and roam the face
|
||
|
of Barsoom with the other children of the First Parent.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now their bisexuality permits them to reproduce themselves
|
||
|
after the manner of true plants, but otherwise they have
|
||
|
progressed but little in all the ages of their existence.
|
||
|
Their actions and movements are largely matters of instinct
|
||
|
and not guided to any great extent by reason, since the brain
|
||
|
of a plant man is but a trifle larger than the end of your
|
||
|
smallest finger. They live upon vegetation and the blood of
|
||
|
animals, and their brain is just large enough to direct their
|
||
|
movements in the direction of food, and to translate the food
|
||
|
sensations which are carried to it from their eyes and ears.
|
||
|
They have no sense of self-preservation and so are entirely
|
||
|
without fear in the face of danger. That is why they are such
|
||
|
terrible antagonists in combat."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I wondered why the black man took such pains to discourse
|
||
|
thus at length to enemies upon the genesis of life Barsoomian.
|
||
|
It seemed a strangely inopportune moment for a proud member
|
||
|
of a proud race to unbend in casual conversation with a captor.
|
||
|
Especially in view of the fact that the black still lay securely
|
||
|
bound upon the deck.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was the faintest straying of his eye beyond me for the
|
||
|
barest fraction of a second that explained his motive for
|
||
|
thus dragging out my interest in his truly absorbing story.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He lay a little forward of where I stood at the levers, and
|
||
|
thus he faced the stern of the vessel as he addressed me. It
|
||
|
was at the end of his description of the plant men that I
|
||
|
caught his eye fixed momentarily upon something behind me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Nor could I be mistaken in the swift gleam of triumph
|
||
|
that brightened those dark orbs for an instant.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Some time before I had reduced our speed, for we had left the
|
||
|
Valley Dor many miles astern, and I felt comparatively safe.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I turned an apprehensive glance behind me, and the sight
|
||
|
that I saw froze the new-born hope of freedom that had been
|
||
|
springing up within me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A great battleship, forging silent and unlighted through the
|
||
|
dark night, loomed close astern.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER VIII
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE DEPTHS OF OMEAN
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now I realized why the black pirate had kept me engrossed
|
||
|
with his strange tale. For miles he had sensed the approach
|
||
|
of succour, and but for that single tell-tale glance the
|
||
|
battleship would have been directly above us in another moment,
|
||
|
and the boarding party which was doubtless even now swinging
|
||
|
in their harness from the ship's keel, would have swarmed our deck,
|
||
|
placing my rising hope of escape in sudden and total eclipse.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was too old a hand in aerial warfare to be at a loss
|
||
|
now for the right manoeuvre. Simultaneously I reversed the
|
||
|
engines and dropped the little vessel a sheer hundred feet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Above my head I could see the dangling forms of the
|
||
|
boarding party as the battleship raced over us. Then I rose at
|
||
|
a sharp angle, throwing my speed lever to its last notch.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Like a bolt from a crossbow my splendid craft shot its
|
||
|
steel prow straight at the whirring propellers of the giant
|
||
|
above us. If I could but touch them the huge bulk would
|
||
|
be disabled for hours and escape once more possible.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At the same instant the sun shot above the horizon,
|
||
|
disclosing a hundred grim, black faces peering over
|
||
|
the stern of the battleship upon us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At sight of us a shout of rage went up from a hundred throats.
|
||
|
Orders were shouted, but it was too late to save the
|
||
|
giant propellers, and with a crash we rammed them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Instantly with the shock of impact I reversed my engine,
|
||
|
but my prow was wedged in the hole it had made in the
|
||
|
battleship's stern. Only a second I hung there before tearing
|
||
|
away, but that second was amply long to swarm my deck
|
||
|
with black devils.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was no fight. In the first place there was no room
|
||
|
to fight. We were simply submerged by numbers. Then as
|
||
|
swords menaced me a command from Xodar stayed the hands
|
||
|
of his fellows.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Secure them," he said, "but do not injure them."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Several of the pirates already had released Xodar. He now
|
||
|
personally attended to my disarming and saw that I was
|
||
|
properly bound. At least he thought that the binding was
|
||
|
secure. It would have been had I been a Martian, but I had
|
||
|
to smile at the puny strands that confined my wrists. When
|
||
|
the time came I could snap them as they had been cotton
|
||
|
string.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The girl they bound also, and then they fastened us together.
|
||
|
In the meantime they had brought our craft alongside the
|
||
|
disabled battleship, and soon we were transported to the latter's deck.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Fully a thousand black men manned the great engine of destruction.
|
||
|
Her decks were crowded with them as they pressed forward as far as
|
||
|
discipline would permit to get a glimpse of their captives.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The girl's beauty elicited many brutal comments and vulgar jests.
|
||
|
It was evident that these self-thought supermen were far inferior
|
||
|
to the red men of Barsoom in refinement and in chivalry.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My close-cropped black hair and thern complexion were
|
||
|
the subjects of much comment. When Xodar told his fellow
|
||
|
nobles of my fighting ability and strange origin they crowded
|
||
|
about me with numerous questions.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The fact that I wore the harness and metal of a thern who
|
||
|
had been killed by a member of my party convinced them
|
||
|
that I was an enemy of their hereditary foes, and placed
|
||
|
me on a better footing in their estimation.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Without exception the blacks were handsome men, and
|
||
|
well built. The officers were conspicuous through the
|
||
|
wondrous magnificence of their resplendent trappings.
|
||
|
Many harnesses were so encrusted with gold, platinum, silver
|
||
|
and precious stones as to entirely hide the leather beneath.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The harness of the commanding officer was a solid mass
|
||
|
of diamonds. Against the ebony background of his skin they
|
||
|
blazed out with a peculiarly accentuated effulgence. The whole
|
||
|
scene was enchanting. The handsome men; the barbaric splendour
|
||
|
of the accoutrements; the polished skeel wood of the deck; the
|
||
|
gloriously grained sorapus of the cabins, inlaid with priceless
|
||
|
jewels and precious metals in intricate and beautiful design;
|
||
|
the burnished gold of hand rails; the shining metal of the guns.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Phaidor and I were taken below decks, where, still fast bound,
|
||
|
we were thrown into a small compartment which contained a
|
||
|
single port-hole. As our escort left us they barred the
|
||
|
door behind them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We could hear the men working on the broken propellers,
|
||
|
and from the port-hole we could see that the vessel was
|
||
|
drifting lazily toward the south.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For some time neither of us spoke. Each was occupied
|
||
|
with his own thoughts. For my part I was wondering as to
|
||
|
the fate of Tars Tarkas and the girl, Thuvia.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Even if they succeeded in eluding pursuit they must eventually
|
||
|
fall into the hands of either red men or green, and as fugitives
|
||
|
from the Valley Dor they could look for but little else than a
|
||
|
swift and terrible death.
|
||
|
|
||
|
How I wished that I might have accompanied them. It
|
||
|
seemed to me that I could not fail to impress upon the
|
||
|
intelligent red men of Barsoom the wicked deception that a
|
||
|
cruel and senseless superstition had foisted upon them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Tardos Mors would believe me. Of that I was positive. And
|
||
|
that he would have the courage of his convictions my knowledge
|
||
|
of his character assured me. Dejah Thoris would believe me.
|
||
|
Not a doubt as to that entered my head. Then there were
|
||
|
a thousand of my red and green warrior friends whom
|
||
|
I knew would face eternal damnation gladly for my sake.
|
||
|
Like Tars Tarkas, where I led they would follow.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My only danger lay in that should I ever escape the black
|
||
|
pirates it might be to fall into the hands of unfriendly red
|
||
|
or green men. Then it would mean short shrift for me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, there seemed little to worry about on that score, for the
|
||
|
likelihood of my ever escaping the blacks was extremely remote.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The girl and I were linked together by a rope which permitted
|
||
|
us to move only about three or four feet from each other.
|
||
|
When we had entered the compartment we had seated ourselves
|
||
|
upon a low bench beneath the porthole. The bench was the
|
||
|
only furniture of the room. It was of sorapus wood.
|
||
|
The floor, ceiling and walls were of carborundum aluminum,
|
||
|
a light, impenetrable composition extensively utilized
|
||
|
in the construction of Martian fighting ships.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I had sat meditating upon the future my eyes had
|
||
|
been riveted upon the port-hole which was just level with
|
||
|
them as I sat. Suddenly I looked toward Phaidor. She was
|
||
|
regarding me with a strange expression I had not before seen
|
||
|
upon her face. She was very beautiful then.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Instantly her white lids veiled her eyes, and I thought I
|
||
|
discovered a delicate flush tingeing her cheek. Evidently she
|
||
|
was embarrassed at having been detected in the act of staring
|
||
|
at a lesser creature, I thought.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do you find the study of the lower orders interesting?"
|
||
|
I asked, laughing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She looked up again with a nervous but relieved little laugh.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh very," she said, "especially when they have such excellent profiles."
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was my turn to flush, but I did not. I felt that she was
|
||
|
poking fun at me, and I admired a brave heart that could look
|
||
|
for humour on the road to death, and so I laughed with her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do you know where we are going?" she said.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"To solve the mystery of the eternal hereafter, I imagine," I replied.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am going to a worse fate than that," she said, with a little shudder.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What do you mean?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I can only guess," she replied, "since no thern damsel of
|
||
|
all the millions that have been stolen away by black pirates
|
||
|
during the ages they have raided our domains has ever returned
|
||
|
to narrate her experiences among them. That they never take a
|
||
|
man prisoner lends strength to the belief that the fate of the
|
||
|
girls they steal is worse than death."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Is it not a just retribution?" I could not help but ask.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What do you mean?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do not the therns themselves do likewise with the poor creatures
|
||
|
who take the voluntary pilgrimage down the River of Mystery?
|
||
|
Was not Thuvia for fifteen years a plaything and a slave?
|
||
|
Is it less than just that you should suffer as you have
|
||
|
caused others to suffer?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You do not understand," she replied. "We therns are a holy race.
|
||
|
It is an honour to a lesser creature to be a slave among us.
|
||
|
Did we not occasionally save a few of the lower orders that
|
||
|
stupidly float down an unknown river to an unknown end all
|
||
|
would become the prey of the plant men and the apes."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But do you not by every means encourage the superstition
|
||
|
among those of the outside world?" I argued. "That is the
|
||
|
wickedest of your deeds. Can you tell me why you foster
|
||
|
the cruel deception?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"All life on Barsoom," she said, "is created solely for the
|
||
|
support of the race of therns. How else could we live did
|
||
|
the outer world not furnish our labour and our food? Think
|
||
|
you that a thern would demean himself by labour?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is true then that you eat human flesh?" I asked in horror.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She looked at me in pitying commiseration for my ignorance.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Truly we eat the flesh of the lower orders. Do not you also?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The flesh of beasts, yes," I replied, "but not the flesh of man."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"As man may eat of the flesh of beasts, so may gods eat of
|
||
|
the flesh of man. The Holy Therns are the gods of Barsoom."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was disgusted and I imagine that I showed it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are an unbeliever now," she continued gently, "but
|
||
|
should we be fortunate enough to escape the clutches of the
|
||
|
black pirates and come again to the court of Matai Shang I
|
||
|
think that we shall find an argument to convince you of the
|
||
|
error of your ways. And--," she hesitated, "perhaps we shall
|
||
|
find a way to keep you as--as--one of us."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Again her eyes dropped to the floor, and a faint colour
|
||
|
suffused her cheek. I could not understand her meaning; nor
|
||
|
did I for a long time. Dejah Thoris was wont to say that in
|
||
|
some things I was a veritable simpleton, and I guess that
|
||
|
she was right.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I fear that I would ill requite your father's hospitality,"
|
||
|
I answered, "since the first thing that I should do were I a
|
||
|
thern would be to set an armed guard at the mouth of the
|
||
|
River Iss to escort the poor deluded voyagers back to
|
||
|
the outer world. Also should I devote my life to the
|
||
|
extermination of the hideous plant men and their horrible
|
||
|
companions, the great white apes."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She looked at me really horror struck.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, no," she cried, "you must not say such terribly
|
||
|
sacrilegious things--you must not even think them.
|
||
|
Should they ever guess that you entertained such
|
||
|
frightful thoughts, should we chance to regain the
|
||
|
temples of the therns, they would mete out a frightful
|
||
|
death to you. Not even my--my--" Again she flushed,
|
||
|
and started over. "Not even I could save you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I said no more. Evidently it was useless. She was even more
|
||
|
steeped in superstition than the Martians of the outer world.
|
||
|
They only worshipped a beautiful hope for a life of love
|
||
|
and peace and happiness in the hereafter. The therns
|
||
|
worshipped the hideous plant men and the apes, or at
|
||
|
least they reverenced them as the abodes of the departed
|
||
|
spirits of their own dead.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At this point the door of our prison opened to admit Xodar.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He smiled pleasantly at me, and when he smiled his expression
|
||
|
was kindly--anything but cruel or vindictive.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Since you cannot escape under any circumstances," he said,
|
||
|
"I cannot see the necessity for keeping you confined below.
|
||
|
I will cut your bonds and you may come on deck. You will
|
||
|
witness something very interesting, and as you never shall
|
||
|
return to the outer world it will do no harm to permit you
|
||
|
to see it. You will see what no other than the First Born
|
||
|
and their slaves know the existence of--the subterranean
|
||
|
entrance to the Holy Land, to the real heaven of Barsoom.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It will be an excellent lesson for this daughter of the therns,"
|
||
|
he added, "for she shall see the Temple of Issus, and Issus,
|
||
|
perchance, shall embrace her."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Phaidor's head went high.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What blasphemy is this, dog of a pirate?" she cried.
|
||
|
"Issus would wipe out your entire breed an' you ever
|
||
|
came within sight of her temple."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You have much to learn, thern," replied Xodar, with an
|
||
|
ugly smile, "nor do I envy you the manner in which you
|
||
|
will learn it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
As we came on deck I saw to my surprise that the vessel
|
||
|
was passing over a great field of snow and ice. As far as the
|
||
|
eye could reach in any direction naught else was visible.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There could be but one solution to the mystery. We were
|
||
|
above the south polar ice cap. Only at the poles of Mars is
|
||
|
there ice or snow upon the planet. No sign of life appeared
|
||
|
below us. Evidently we were too far south even for the great
|
||
|
fur-bearing animals which the Martians so delight in hunting.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Xodar was at my side as I stood looking out over the ship's rail.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What course?" I asked him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A little west of south," he replied. "You will see the Otz
|
||
|
Valley directly. We shall skirt it for a few hundred miles."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The Otz Valley!" I exclaimed; "but, man, is not there where
|
||
|
lie the domains of the therns from which I but just escaped?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes," answered Xodar. "You crossed this ice field last
|
||
|
night in the long chase that you led us. The Otz Valley lies
|
||
|
in a mighty depression at the south pole. It is sunk thousands
|
||
|
of feet below the level of the surrounding country, like a
|
||
|
great round bowl. A hundred miles from its northern boundary
|
||
|
rise the Otz Mountains which circle the inner Valley of
|
||
|
Dor, in the exact centre of which lies the Lost Sea of Korus.
|
||
|
On the shore of this sea stands the Golden Temple of Issus
|
||
|
in the Land of the First Born. It is there that we are bound."
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I looked I commenced to realize why it was that in
|
||
|
all the ages only one had escaped from the Valley Dor. My
|
||
|
only wonder was that even the one had been successful. To
|
||
|
cross this frozen, wind-swept waste of bleak ice alone and
|
||
|
on foot would be impossible.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Only by air boat could the journey be made," I finished aloud.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It was thus that one did escape the therns in bygone
|
||
|
times; but none has ever escaped the First Born," said Xodar,
|
||
|
with a touch of pride in his voice.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We had now reached the southernmost extremity of the
|
||
|
great ice barrier. It ended abruptly in a sheer wall thousands
|
||
|
of feet high at the base of which stretched a level valley,
|
||
|
broken here and there by low rolling hills and little clumps
|
||
|
of forest, and with tiny rivers formed by the melting of the
|
||
|
ice barrier at its base.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Once we passed far above what seemed to be a deep
|
||
|
canyon-like rift stretching from the ice wall on the north
|
||
|
across the valley as far as the eye could reach. "That is the
|
||
|
bed of the River Iss," said Xodar. "It runs far beneath the
|
||
|
ice field, and below the level of the Valley Otz, but its canyon
|
||
|
is open here."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Presently I descried what I took to be a village, and pointing
|
||
|
it out to Xodar asked him what it might be.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is a village of lost souls," he answered, laughing. "This
|
||
|
strip between the ice barrier and the mountains is considered
|
||
|
neutral ground. Some turn off from their voluntary pilgrimage
|
||
|
down the Iss, and, scaling the awful walls of its canyon below
|
||
|
us, stop in the valley. Also a slave now and then escapes
|
||
|
from the therns and makes his way hither.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They do not attempt to recapture such, since there is no
|
||
|
escape from this outer valley, and as a matter of fact they
|
||
|
fear the patrolling cruisers of the First Born too much to
|
||
|
venture from their own domains.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The poor creatures of this outer valley are not molested
|
||
|
by us since they have nothing that we desire, nor are they
|
||
|
numerically strong enough to give us an interesting fight--so
|
||
|
we too leave them alone.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There are several villages of them, but they have increased
|
||
|
in numbers but little in many years since they are always
|
||
|
warring among themselves."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now we swung a little north of west, leaving the valley of
|
||
|
lost souls, and shortly I discerned over our starboard bow
|
||
|
what appeared to be a black mountain rising from the desolate
|
||
|
waste of ice. It was not high and seemed to have a flat top.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Xodar had left us to attend to some duty on the vessel,
|
||
|
and Phaidor and I stood alone beside the rail. The girl had
|
||
|
not once spoken since we had been brought to the deck.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Is what he has been telling me true?" I asked her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In part, yes," she answered. "That about the outer valley
|
||
|
is true, but what he says of the location of the Temple
|
||
|
of Issus in the centre of his country is false. If it is not
|
||
|
false--" she hesitated. "Oh it cannot be true, it cannot be
|
||
|
true. For if it were true then for countless ages have my
|
||
|
people gone to torture and ignominious death at the hands
|
||
|
of their cruel enemies, instead of to the beautiful Life Eternal
|
||
|
that we have been taught to believe Issus holds for us."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"As the lesser Barsoomians of the outer world have been
|
||
|
lured by you to the terrible Valley Dor, so may it be that the
|
||
|
therns themselves have been lured by the First Born to an
|
||
|
equally horrid fate," I suggested. "It would be a stern and
|
||
|
awful retribution, Phaidor; but a just one."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I cannot believe it," she said.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We shall see," I answered, and then we fell silent again for we
|
||
|
were rapidly approaching the black mountains, which in some
|
||
|
indefinable way seemed linked with the answer to our problem.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As we neared the dark, truncated cone the vessel's speed was
|
||
|
diminished until we barely moved. Then we topped the crest
|
||
|
of the mountain and below us I saw yawning the mouth of a
|
||
|
huge circular well, the bottom of which was lost in inky blackness.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The diameter of this enormous pit was fully a thousand feet.
|
||
|
The walls were smooth and appeared to be composed of a
|
||
|
black, basaltic rock.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For a moment the vessel hovered motionless directly above
|
||
|
the centre of the gaping void, then slowly she began to settle
|
||
|
into the black chasm. Lower and lower she sank until as
|
||
|
darkness enveloped us her lights were thrown on and in the
|
||
|
dim halo of her own radiance the monster battleship dropped
|
||
|
on and on down into what seemed to me must be the very
|
||
|
bowels of Barsoom.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For quite half an hour we descended and then the shaft
|
||
|
terminated abruptly in the dome of a mighty subterranean
|
||
|
world. Below us rose and fell the billows of a buried sea. A
|
||
|
phosphorescent radiance illuminated the scene. Thousands of
|
||
|
ships dotted the bosom of the ocean. Little islands rose here
|
||
|
and there to support the strange and colourless vegetation of
|
||
|
this strange world.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Slowly and with majestic grace the battleship dropped until
|
||
|
she rested on the water. Her great propellers had been
|
||
|
drawn and housed during our descent of the shaft and in
|
||
|
their place had been run out the smaller but more powerful
|
||
|
water propellers. As these commenced to revolve the
|
||
|
ship took up its journey once more, riding the new element
|
||
|
as buoyantly and as safely as she had the air.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Phaidor and I were dumbfounded. Neither had either heard or
|
||
|
dreamed that such a world existed beneath the surface of Barsoom.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Nearly all the vessels we saw were war craft. There were
|
||
|
a few lighters and barges, but none of the great merchantmen
|
||
|
such as ply the upper air between the cities of the outer world.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Here is the harbour of the navy of the First Born,"
|
||
|
said a voice behind us, and turning we saw Xodar watching
|
||
|
us with an amused smile on his lips.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This sea," he continued, "is larger than Korus. It receives
|
||
|
the waters of the lesser sea above it. To keep it from filling
|
||
|
above a certain level we have four great pumping stations that
|
||
|
force the oversupply back into the reservoirs far north from which
|
||
|
the red men draw the water which irrigates their farm lands."
|
||
|
|
||
|
A new light burst on me with this explanation. The red
|
||
|
men had always considered it a miracle that caused great
|
||
|
columns of water to spurt from the solid rock of their
|
||
|
reservoir sides to increase the supply of the precious
|
||
|
liquid which is so scarce in the outer world of Mars.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Never had their learned men been able to fathom the
|
||
|
secret of the source of this enormous volume of water.
|
||
|
As ages passed they had simply come to accept it as a
|
||
|
matter of course and ceased to question its origin.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We passed several islands on which were strangely shaped
|
||
|
circular buildings, apparently roofless, and pierced midway
|
||
|
between the ground and their tops with small, heavily barred
|
||
|
windows. They bore the earmarks of prisons, which were
|
||
|
further accentuated by the armed guards who squatted on
|
||
|
low benches without, or patrolled the short beach lines.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Few of these islets contained over an acre of ground, but
|
||
|
presently we sighted a much larger one directly ahead. This
|
||
|
proved to be our destination, and the great ship was soon
|
||
|
made fast against the steep shore.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Xodar signalled us to follow him and with a half-dozen
|
||
|
officers and men we left the battleship and approached a
|
||
|
large oval structure a couple of hundred yards from the shore.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You shall soon see Issus," said Xodar to Phaidor. "The
|
||
|
few prisoners we take are presented to her. Occasionally she
|
||
|
selects slaves from among them to replenish the ranks of her
|
||
|
handmaidens. None serves Issus above a single year," and
|
||
|
there was a grim smile on the black's lips that lent a cruel
|
||
|
and sinister meaning to his simple statement.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Phaidor, though loath to believe that Issus was allied to
|
||
|
such as these, had commenced to entertain doubts and
|
||
|
fears. She clung very closely to me, no longer the proud
|
||
|
daughter of the Master of Life and Death upon Barsoom, but a
|
||
|
young and frightened girl in the power of relentless enemies.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The building which we now entered was entirely roofless.
|
||
|
In its centre was a long tank of water, set below the level of
|
||
|
the floor like the swimming pool of a natatorium. Near one
|
||
|
side of the pool floated an odd-looking black object. Whether
|
||
|
it were some strange monster of these buried waters, or a
|
||
|
queer raft, I could not at once perceive.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We were soon to know, however, for as we reached the
|
||
|
edge of the pool directly above the thing, Xodar cried out a
|
||
|
few words in a strange tongue. Immediately a hatch cover
|
||
|
was raised from the surface of the object, and a black
|
||
|
seaman sprang from the bowels of the strange craft.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Xodar addressed the seaman.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Transmit to your officer," he said, "the commands of
|
||
|
Dator Xodar. Say to him that Dator Xodar, with officers
|
||
|
and men, escorting two prisoners, would be transported to
|
||
|
the gardens of Issus beside the Golden Temple."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Blessed be the shell of thy first ancestor, most noble Dator,"
|
||
|
replied the man. "It shall be done even as thou sayest," and
|
||
|
raising both hands, palms backward, above his head after the
|
||
|
manner of salute which is common to all races of Barsoom,
|
||
|
he disappeared once more into the entrails of his ship.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A moment later an officer resplendent in the gorgeous trappings
|
||
|
of his rank appeared on deck and welcomed Xodar to the vessel,
|
||
|
and in the latter's wake we filed aboard and below.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The cabin in which we found ourselves extended entirely
|
||
|
across the ship, having port-holes on either side below the
|
||
|
water line. No sooner were all below than a number of
|
||
|
commands were given, in accordance with which the hatch
|
||
|
was closed and secured, and the vessel commenced to vibrate
|
||
|
to the rhythmic purr of its machinery.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Where can we be going in such a tiny pool of water?" asked Phaidor.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Not up," I replied, "for I noticed particularly that while the
|
||
|
building is roofless it is covered with a strong metal grating."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then where?" she asked again.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"From the appearance of the craft I judge we are going down," I replied.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Phaidor shuddered. For such long ages have the waters
|
||
|
of Barsoom's seas been a thing of tradition only that even
|
||
|
this daughter of the therns, born as she had been within
|
||
|
sight of Mars' only remaining sea, had the same terror of
|
||
|
deep water as is a common attribute of all Martians.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Presently the sensation of sinking became very apparent.
|
||
|
We were going down swiftly. Now we could hear the water rushing
|
||
|
past the port-holes, and in the dim light that filtered through
|
||
|
them to the water beyond the swirling eddies were plainly visible.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Phaidor grasped my arm.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Save me!" she whispered. "Save me and your every
|
||
|
wish shall be granted. Anything within the power of the Holy
|
||
|
Therns to give will be yours. Phaidor--" she stumbled a little
|
||
|
here, and then in a very low voice, "Phaidor already is yours."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I felt very sorry for the poor child, and placed my hand
|
||
|
over hers where it rested on my arm. I presume my motive
|
||
|
was misunderstood, for with a swift glance about the apartment
|
||
|
to assure herself that we were alone, she threw both her arms
|
||
|
about my neck and dragged my face down to hers.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER IX
|
||
|
|
||
|
ISSUS, GODDESS OF LIFE ETERNAL
|
||
|
|
||
|
The confession of love which the girl's fright had wrung
|
||
|
from her touched me deeply; but it humiliated me as well,
|
||
|
since I felt that in some thoughtless word or act I had given
|
||
|
her reason to believe that I reciprocated her affection.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Never have I been much of a ladies' man, being more
|
||
|
concerned with fighting and kindred arts which have ever
|
||
|
seemed to me more befitting a man than mooning over a
|
||
|
scented glove four sizes too small for him, or kissing a dead
|
||
|
flower that has begun to smell like a cabbage. So I was quite
|
||
|
at a loss as to what to do or say. A thousand times rather face
|
||
|
the wild hordes of the dead sea bottoms than meet the eyes of this
|
||
|
beautiful young girl and tell her the thing that I must tell her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But there was nothing else to be done, and so I did it.
|
||
|
Very clumsily too, I fear.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Gently I unclasped her hands from about my neck, and still
|
||
|
holding them in mine I told her the story of my love for
|
||
|
Dejah Thoris. That of all the women of two worlds that I had
|
||
|
known and admired during my long life she alone had I loved.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The tale did not seem to please her. Like a tigress she sprang,
|
||
|
panting, to her feet. Her beautiful face was distorted in an
|
||
|
expression of horrible malevolence. Her eyes fairly blazed into mine.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Dog," she hissed. "Dog of a blasphemer! Think you that
|
||
|
Phaidor, daughter of Matai Shang, supplicates? She commands.
|
||
|
What to her is your puny outer world passion for the vile
|
||
|
creature you chose in your other life?
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Phaidor has glorified you with her love, and you have
|
||
|
spurned her. Ten thousand unthinkably atrocious deaths
|
||
|
could not atone for the affront that you have put upon me.
|
||
|
The thing that you call Dejah Thoris shall die the most
|
||
|
horrible of them all. You have sealed the warrant for her doom.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And you! You shall be the meanest slave in the service
|
||
|
of the goddess you have attempted to humiliate. Tortures
|
||
|
and ignominies shall be heaped upon you until you grovel
|
||
|
at my feet asking the boon of death.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In my gracious generosity I shall at length grant your
|
||
|
prayer, and from the high balcony of the Golden Cliffs
|
||
|
I shall watch the great white apes tear you asunder."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She had it all fixed up. The whole lovely programme from
|
||
|
start to finish. It amazed me to think that one so divinely
|
||
|
beautiful could at the same time be so fiendishly vindictive.
|
||
|
It occurred to me, however, that she had overlooked one little
|
||
|
factor in her revenge, and so, without any intent to add to her
|
||
|
discomfiture, but rather to permit her to rearrange her plans
|
||
|
along more practical lines, I pointed to the nearest port-hole.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Evidently she had entirely forgotten her surroundings and
|
||
|
her present circumstances, for a single glance at the dark,
|
||
|
swirling waters without sent her crumpled upon a low bench,
|
||
|
where with her face buried in her arms she sobbed more like a
|
||
|
very unhappy little girl than a proud and all-powerful goddess.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Down, down we continued to sink until the heavy glass of
|
||
|
the port-holes became noticeably warm from the heat of
|
||
|
the water without. Evidently we were very far beneath
|
||
|
the surface crust of Mars.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Presently our downward motion ceased, and I could hear
|
||
|
the propellers swirling through the water at our stern and
|
||
|
forcing us ahead at high speed. It was very dark down there,
|
||
|
but the light from our port-holes, and the reflection from
|
||
|
what must have been a powerful searchlight on the submarine's
|
||
|
nose showed that we were forging through a narrow passage,
|
||
|
rock-lined, and tube-like.
|
||
|
|
||
|
After a few minutes the propellers ceased their whirring.
|
||
|
We came to a full stop, and then commenced to rise swiftly
|
||
|
toward the surface. Soon the light from without increased
|
||
|
and we came to a stop.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Xodar entered the cabin with his men.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come," he said, and we followed him through the hatchway
|
||
|
which had been opened by one of the seamen.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We found ourselves in a small subterranean vault, in the
|
||
|
centre of which was the pool in which lay our submarine,
|
||
|
floating as we had first seen her with only her black back showing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Around the edge of the pool was a level platform, and then
|
||
|
the walls of the cave rose perpendicularly for a few feet
|
||
|
to arch toward the centre of the low roof. The walls
|
||
|
about the ledge were pierced with a number of entrances to
|
||
|
dimly lighted passageways.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Toward one of these our captors led us, and after a short
|
||
|
walk halted before a steel cage which lay at the bottom of a
|
||
|
shaft rising above us as far as one could see.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The cage proved to be one of the common types of elevator
|
||
|
cars that I had seen in other parts of Barsoom. They are
|
||
|
operated by means of enormous magnets which are suspended
|
||
|
at the top of the shaft. By an electrical device the volume of
|
||
|
magnetism generated is regulated and the speed of the car varied.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In long stretches they move at a sickening speed, especially on
|
||
|
the upward trip, since the small force of gravity inherent to Mars
|
||
|
results in very little opposition to the powerful force above.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Scarcely had the door of the car closed behind us than
|
||
|
we were slowing up to stop at the landing above, so rapid
|
||
|
was our ascent of the long shaft.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When we emerged from the little building which houses
|
||
|
the upper terminus of the elevator, we found ourselves
|
||
|
in the midst of a veritable fairyland of beauty.
|
||
|
The combined languages of Earth men hold no words to
|
||
|
convey to the mind the gorgeous beauties of the scene.
|
||
|
|
||
|
One may speak of scarlet sward and ivory-stemmed trees
|
||
|
decked with brilliant purple blooms; of winding walks paved
|
||
|
with crushed rubies, with emerald, with turquoise, even with
|
||
|
diamonds themselves; of a magnificent temple of burnished
|
||
|
gold, hand-wrought with marvellous designs; but where are
|
||
|
the words to describe the glorious colours that are unknown
|
||
|
to earthly eyes? where the mind or the imagination that
|
||
|
can grasp the gorgeous scintillations of unheard-of rays as
|
||
|
they emanate from the thousand nameless jewels of Barsoom?
|
||
|
|
||
|
Even my eyes, for long years accustomed to the barbaric
|
||
|
splendours of a Martian Jeddak's court, were amazed at the
|
||
|
glory of the scene.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Phaidor's eyes were wide in amazement.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The Temple of Issus," she whispered, half to herself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Xodar watched us with his grim smile, partly of amusement
|
||
|
and partly malicious gloating.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The gardens swarmed with brilliantly trapped black men
|
||
|
and women. Among them moved red and white females
|
||
|
serving their every want. The places of the outer world and
|
||
|
the temples of the therns had been robbed of their princesses
|
||
|
and goddesses that the blacks might have their slaves.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Through this scene we moved toward the temple. At the
|
||
|
main entrance we were halted by a cordon of armed guards.
|
||
|
Xodar spoke a few words to an officer who came forward to
|
||
|
question us. Together they entered the temple, where they
|
||
|
remained for some time.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When they returned it was to announce that Issus desired
|
||
|
to look upon the daughter of Matai Shang, and the strange
|
||
|
creature from another world who had been a Prince of Helium.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Slowly we moved through endless corridors of unthinkable
|
||
|
beauty; through magnificent apartments, and noble halls.
|
||
|
At length we were halted in a spacious chamber in the centre
|
||
|
of the temple. One of the officers who had accompanied us
|
||
|
advanced to a large door in the further end of the chamber.
|
||
|
Here he must have made some sort of signal for immediately
|
||
|
the door opened and another richly trapped courtier emerged.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We were then led up to the door, where we were directed to get
|
||
|
down on our hands and knees with our backs toward the room we
|
||
|
were to enter. The doors were swung open and after being
|
||
|
cautioned not to turn our heads under penalty of instant
|
||
|
death we were commanded to back into the presence of Issus.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Never have I been in so humiliating a position in my life,
|
||
|
and only my love for Dejah Thoris and the hope which still
|
||
|
clung to me that I might again see her kept me from rising to
|
||
|
face the goddess of the First Born and go down to my
|
||
|
death like a gentleman, facing my foes and with their blood
|
||
|
mingling with mine.
|
||
|
|
||
|
After we had crawled in this disgusting fashion for a matter
|
||
|
of a couple of hundred feet we were halted by our escort.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Let them rise," said a voice behind us; a thin, wavering
|
||
|
voice, yet one that had evidently been accustomed to command
|
||
|
for many years.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Rise," said our escort, "but do not face toward Issus."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The woman pleases me," said the thin, wavering voice again
|
||
|
after a few moments of silence. "She shall serve me the
|
||
|
allotted time. The man you may return to the Isle of Shador
|
||
|
which lies against the northern shore of the Sea of Omean.
|
||
|
Let the woman turn and look upon Issus, knowing that those
|
||
|
of the lower orders who gaze upon the holy vision of her
|
||
|
radiant face survive the blinding glory but a single year."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I watched Phaidor from the corner of my eye. She paled
|
||
|
to a ghastly hue. Slowly, very slowly she turned, as though
|
||
|
drawn by some invisible yet irresistible force. She was
|
||
|
standing quite close to me, so close that her bare arm touched
|
||
|
mine as she finally faced Issus, Goddess of Life Eternal.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I could not see the girl's face as her eyes rested for the first
|
||
|
time on the Supreme Deity of Mars, but felt the shudder that ran
|
||
|
through her in the trembling flesh of the arm that touched mine.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It must be dazzling loveliness indeed," thought I, "to
|
||
|
cause such emotion in the breast of so radiant a beauty
|
||
|
as Phaidor, daughter of Matai Shang."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Let the woman remain. Remove the man. Go." Thus
|
||
|
spoke Issus, and the heavy hand of the officer fell upon my
|
||
|
shoulder. In accordance with his instructions I dropped to
|
||
|
my hands and knees once more and crawled from the Presence.
|
||
|
It had been my first audience with deity, but I am free
|
||
|
to confess that I was not greatly impressed--other than with
|
||
|
the ridiculous figure I cut scrambling about on my marrow bones.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Once without the chamber the doors closed behind us and
|
||
|
I was bid to rise. Xodar joined me and together we slowly
|
||
|
retraced our steps toward the gardens.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You spared my life when you easily might have taken it,"
|
||
|
he said after we had proceeded some little way in silence,
|
||
|
"and I would aid you if I might. I can help to make your
|
||
|
life here more bearable, but your fate is inevitable.
|
||
|
You may never hope to return to the outer world."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What will be my fate?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That will depend largely upon Issus. So long as she does not
|
||
|
send for you and reveal her face to you, you may live on for
|
||
|
years in as mild a form of bondage as I can arrange for you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why should she send for me?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The men of the lower orders she often uses for various
|
||
|
purposes of amusement. Such a fighter as you, for example,
|
||
|
would render fine sport in the monthly rites of the temple.
|
||
|
There are men pitted against men, and against beasts for the
|
||
|
edification of Issus and the replenishment of her larder."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She eats human flesh?" I asked. Not in horror, however,
|
||
|
for since my recently acquired knowledge of the Holy Therns
|
||
|
I was prepared for anything in this still less accessible heaven,
|
||
|
where all was evidently dictated by a single omnipotence;
|
||
|
where ages of narrow fanaticism and self-worship had eradicated
|
||
|
all the broader humanitarian instincts that the race might
|
||
|
once have possessed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They were a people drunk with power and success, looking
|
||
|
upon the other inhabitants of Mars as we look upon the
|
||
|
beasts of the field and the forest. Why then should they not
|
||
|
eat of the flesh of the lower orders whose lives and characters
|
||
|
they no more understood than do we the inmost thoughts and
|
||
|
sensibilities of the cattle we slaughter for our earthly tables.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She eats only the flesh of the best bred of the Holy Therns
|
||
|
and the red Barsoomians. The flesh of the others goes to our
|
||
|
boards. The animals are eaten by the slaves. She also eats
|
||
|
other dainties."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I did not understand then that there lay any special significance
|
||
|
in his reference to other dainties. I thought the limit of
|
||
|
ghoulishness already had been reached in the recitation of
|
||
|
Issus' menu. I still had much to learn as to the depths of
|
||
|
cruelty and bestiality to which omnipotence may drag its possessor.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We had about reached the last of the many chambers and corridors
|
||
|
which led to the gardens when an officer overtook us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Issus would look again upon this man," he said. "The girl has
|
||
|
told her that he is of wondrous beauty and of such prowess that
|
||
|
alone he slew seven of the First Born, and with his bare hands
|
||
|
took Xodar captive, binding him with his own harness."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Xodar looked uncomfortable. Evidently he did not relish
|
||
|
the thought that Issus had learned of his inglorious defeat.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Without a word he turned and we followed the officer
|
||
|
once again to the closed doors before the audience chamber
|
||
|
of Issus, Goddess of Life Eternal.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Here the ceremony of entrance was repeated. Again Issus
|
||
|
bid me rise. For several minutes all was silent as the tomb.
|
||
|
The eyes of deity were appraising me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Presently the thin wavering voice broke the stillness,
|
||
|
repeating in a singsong drone the words which for
|
||
|
countless ages had sealed the doom of numberless victims.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Let the man turn and look upon Issus, knowing that those
|
||
|
of the lower orders who gaze upon the holy vision of her
|
||
|
radiant face survive the blinding glory but a single year."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I turned as I had been bid, expecting such a treat as only
|
||
|
the revealment of divine glory to mortal eyes might produce.
|
||
|
What I saw was a solid phalanx of armed men between myself
|
||
|
and a dais supporting a great bench of carved sorapus
|
||
|
wood. On this bench, or throne, squatted a female black.
|
||
|
She was evidently very old. Not a hair remained upon her
|
||
|
wrinkled skull. With the exception of two yellow fangs she
|
||
|
was entirely toothless. On either side of her thin, hawk-like
|
||
|
nose her eyes burned from the depths of horribly sunken
|
||
|
sockets. The skin of her face was seamed and creased with
|
||
|
a million deepcut furrows. Her body was as wrinkled as her
|
||
|
face, and as repulsive.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Emaciated arms and legs attached to a torso which seemed
|
||
|
to be mostly distorted abdomen completed the "holy vision
|
||
|
of her radiant beauty."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Surrounding her were a number of female slaves, among
|
||
|
them Phaidor, white and trembling.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This is the man who slew seven of the First Born and, bare-handed,
|
||
|
bound Dator Xodar with his own harness?" asked Issus.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Most glorious vision of divine loveliness, it is," replied the
|
||
|
officer who stood at my side.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Produce Dator Xodar," she commanded.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Xodar was brought from the adjoining room.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Issus glared at him, a baleful light in her hideous eyes.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And such as you are a Dator of the First Born?" she squealed.
|
||
|
"For the disgrace you have brought upon the Immortal
|
||
|
Race you shall be degraded to a rank below the lowest.
|
||
|
No longer be you a Dator, but for evermore a slave of slaves,
|
||
|
to fetch and carry for the lower orders that serve in the gardens
|
||
|
of Issus. Remove his harness. Cowards and slaves wear no trappings."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Xodar stood stiffly erect. Not a muscle twitched, nor a
|
||
|
tremor shook his giant frame as a soldier of the guard
|
||
|
roughly stripped his gorgeous trappings from him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Begone," screamed the infuriated little old woman. "Begone,
|
||
|
but instead of the light of the gardens of Issus let you
|
||
|
serve as a slave of this slave who conquered you in the
|
||
|
prison on the Isle of Shador in the Sea of Omean. Take him
|
||
|
away out of the sight of my divine eyes."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Slowly and with high held head the proud Xodar turned
|
||
|
and stalked from the chamber. Issus rose and turned to leave
|
||
|
the room by another exit.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Turning to me, she said: "You shall be returned to Shador
|
||
|
for the present. Later Issus will see the manner of your
|
||
|
fighting. Go." Then she disappeared, followed by her retinue.
|
||
|
Only Phaidor lagged behind, and as I started to follow my
|
||
|
guard toward the gardens, the girl came running after me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, do not leave me in this terrible place," she begged.
|
||
|
"Forgive the things I said to you, my Prince. I did not
|
||
|
mean them. Only take me away with you. Let me share
|
||
|
your imprisonment on Shador." Her words were an almost
|
||
|
incoherent volley of thoughts, so rapidly she spoke.
|
||
|
"You did not understand the honour that I did you. Among the
|
||
|
therns there is no marriage or giving in marriage, as among the
|
||
|
lower orders of the outer world. We might have lived together
|
||
|
for ever in love and happiness. We have both looked upon
|
||
|
Issus and in a year we die. Let us live that year at least
|
||
|
together in what measure of joy remains for the doomed."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If it was difficult for me to understand you, Phaidor," I
|
||
|
replied, "can you not understand that possibly it is equally
|
||
|
difficult for you to understand the motives, the customs
|
||
|
and the social laws that guide me? I do not wish to hurt
|
||
|
you, nor to seem to undervalue the honour which you have
|
||
|
done me, but the thing you desire may not be. Regardless
|
||
|
of the foolish belief of the peoples of the outer world, or of
|
||
|
Holy Thern, or ebon First Born, I am not dead. While I
|
||
|
live my heart beats for but one woman--the incomparable
|
||
|
Dejah Thoris, Princess of Helium. When death overtakes me
|
||
|
my heart shall have ceased to beat; but what comes after
|
||
|
that I know not. And in that I am as wise as Matai Shang,
|
||
|
Master of Life and Death upon Barsoom; or Issus, Goddess
|
||
|
of Life Eternal."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Phaidor stood looking at me intently for a moment. No
|
||
|
anger showed in her eyes this time, only a pathetic expression
|
||
|
of hopeless sorrow.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do not understand," she said, and turning walked slowly in
|
||
|
the direction of the door through which Issus and her retinue
|
||
|
had passed. A moment later she had passed from my sight.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER X
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE PRISON ISLE OF SHADOR
|
||
|
|
||
|
In the outer gardens to which the guard now escorted me,
|
||
|
I found Xodar surrounded by a crowd of noble blacks.
|
||
|
They were reviling and cursing him. The men slapped
|
||
|
his face. The woman spat upon him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When I appeared they turned their attentions toward me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah," cried one, "so this is the creature who overcame
|
||
|
the great Xodar bare-handed. Let us see how it was done."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Let him bind Thurid," suggested a beautiful woman,
|
||
|
laughing. "Thurid is a noble Dator. Let Thurid show the
|
||
|
dog what it means to face a real man."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, Thurid! Thurid!" cried a dozen voices.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Here he is now," exclaimed another, and turning in the
|
||
|
direction indicated I saw a huge black weighed down with
|
||
|
resplendent ornaments and arms advancing with noble and
|
||
|
gallant bearing toward us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What now?" he cried. "What would you of Thurid?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Quickly a dozen voices explained.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Thurid turned toward Xodar, his eyes narrowing to two nasty slits.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Calot!" he hissed. "Ever did I think you carried the heart
|
||
|
of a sorak in your putrid breast. Often have you bested me
|
||
|
in the secret councils of Issus, but now in the field of war
|
||
|
where men are truly gauged your scabby heart hath revealed
|
||
|
its sores to all the world. Calot, I spurn you with my foot,"
|
||
|
and with the words he turned to kick Xodar.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My blood was up. For minutes it had been boiling at the cowardly
|
||
|
treatment they had been according this once powerful comrade
|
||
|
because he had fallen from the favour of Issus. I had no love
|
||
|
for Xodar, but I cannot stand the sight of cowardly injustice
|
||
|
and persecution without seeing red as through a haze of bloody mist,
|
||
|
and doing things on the impulse of the moment that I presume
|
||
|
I never should do after mature deliberation.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was standing close beside Xodar as Thurid swung
|
||
|
his foot for the cowardly kick. The degraded Dator
|
||
|
stood erect and motionless as a carven image.
|
||
|
He was prepared to take whatever his former comrades
|
||
|
had to offer in the way of insults and reproaches,
|
||
|
and take them in manly silence and stoicism.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But as Thurid's foot swung so did mine, and I caught him
|
||
|
a painful blow upon the shin bone that saved Xodar from
|
||
|
this added ignominy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For a moment there was tense silence, then Thurid,
|
||
|
with a roar of rage sprang for my throat; just as Xodar
|
||
|
had upon the deck of the cruiser. The results were identical.
|
||
|
I ducked beneath his outstretched arms, and as he lunged
|
||
|
past me planted a terrific right on the side of his jaw.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The big fellow spun around like a top, his knees gave
|
||
|
beneath him and he crumpled to the ground at my feet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The blacks gazed in astonishment, first at the still form
|
||
|
of the proud Dator lying there in the ruby dust of the pathway,
|
||
|
then at me as though they could not believe that such a thing could be.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You asked me to bind Thurid," I cried; "behold!" And
|
||
|
then I stooped beside the prostrate form, tore the harness
|
||
|
from it, and bound the fellow's arms and legs securely.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"As you have done to Xodar, now do you likewise to Thurid.
|
||
|
Take him before Issus, bound in his own harness, that she
|
||
|
may see with her own eyes that there be one among
|
||
|
you now who is greater than the First Born."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Who are you?" whispered the woman who had first suggested
|
||
|
that I attempt to bind Thurid.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am a citizen of two worlds; Captain John Carter of Virginia,
|
||
|
Prince of the House of Tardos Mors, Jeddak of Helium.
|
||
|
Take this man to your goddess, as I have said, and tell her,
|
||
|
too, that as I have done to Xodar and Thurid, so also can I
|
||
|
do to the mightiest of her Dators. With naked hands,
|
||
|
with long-sword or with short-sword, I challenge the
|
||
|
flower of her fighting-men to combat."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come," said the officer who was guarding me back to Shador;
|
||
|
"my orders are imperative; there is to be no delay.
|
||
|
Xodar, come you also."
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was little of disrespect in the tone that the man used in
|
||
|
addressing either Xodar or myself. It was evident that he felt
|
||
|
less contempt for the former Dator since he had witnessed the
|
||
|
ease with which I disposed of the powerful Thurid.
|
||
|
|
||
|
That his respect for me was greater than it should have
|
||
|
been for a slave was quite apparent from the fact that
|
||
|
during the balance of the return journey he walked or stood
|
||
|
always behind me, a drawn short-sword in his hand.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The return to the Sea of Omean was uneventful. We dropped
|
||
|
down the awful shaft in the same car that had brought
|
||
|
us to the surface. There we entered the submarine,
|
||
|
taking the long dive to the tunnel far beneath the upper
|
||
|
world. Then through the tunnel and up again to the pool
|
||
|
from which we had had our first introduction to the
|
||
|
wonderful passageway from Omean to the Temple of Issus.
|
||
|
|
||
|
From the island of the submarine we were transported
|
||
|
on a small cruiser to the distant Isle of Shador.
|
||
|
Here we found a small stone prison and a guard of half a
|
||
|
dozen blacks. There was no ceremony wasted in completing our
|
||
|
incarceration. One of the blacks opened the door of the prison
|
||
|
with a huge key, we walked in, the door closed behind us,
|
||
|
the lock grated, and with the sound there swept over me
|
||
|
again that terrible feeling of hopelessness that I had felt in
|
||
|
the Chamber of Mystery in the Golden Cliffs beneath the
|
||
|
gardens of the Holy Therns.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then Tars Tarkas had been with me, but now I was utterly
|
||
|
alone in so far as friendly companionship was concerned. I
|
||
|
fell to wondering about the fate of the great Thark, and of
|
||
|
his beautiful companion, the girl, Thuvia. Even should they
|
||
|
by some miracle have escaped and been received and spared
|
||
|
by a friendly nation, what hope had I of the succour which
|
||
|
I knew they would gladly extend if it lay in their power.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They could not guess my whereabouts or my fate, for none
|
||
|
on all Barsoom even dream of such a place as this. Nor
|
||
|
would it have advantaged me any had they known the exact
|
||
|
location of my prison, for who could hope to penetrate to
|
||
|
this buried sea in the face of the mighty navy of the First
|
||
|
Born? No: my case was hopeless.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, I would make the best of it, and, rising, I swept aside
|
||
|
the brooding despair that had been endeavouring to claim me.
|
||
|
With the idea of exploring my prison, I started to look around.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Xodar sat, with bowed head, upon a low stone bench near
|
||
|
the centre of the room in which we were. He had not spoken
|
||
|
since Issus had degraded him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The building was roofless, the walls rising to a height of
|
||
|
about thirty feet. Half-way up were a couple of small,
|
||
|
heavily barred windows. The prison was divided into several
|
||
|
rooms by partitions twenty feet high. There was no one in
|
||
|
the room which we occupied, but two doors which led to
|
||
|
other rooms were opened. I entered one of these rooms,
|
||
|
but found it vacant. Thus I continued through several of the
|
||
|
chambers until in the last one I found a young red Martian
|
||
|
boy sleeping upon the stone bench which constituted the only
|
||
|
furniture of any of the prison cells.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Evidently he was the only other prisoner. As he slept I
|
||
|
leaned over and looked at him. There was something strangely
|
||
|
familiar about his face, and yet I could not place him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
His features were very regular and, like the proportions
|
||
|
of his graceful limbs and body, beautiful in the extreme.
|
||
|
He was very light in colour for a red man, but in other
|
||
|
respects he seemed a typical specimen of this handsome race.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I did not awaken him, for sleep in prison is such a priceless
|
||
|
boon that I have seen men transformed into raging brutes when
|
||
|
robbed by one of their fellow-prisoners of a few precious
|
||
|
moments of it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Returning to my own cell, I found Xodar still sitting in the
|
||
|
same position in which I had left him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Man," I cried, "it will profit you nothing to mope thus.
|
||
|
It were no disgrace to be bested by John Carter. You have
|
||
|
seen that in the ease with which I accounted for Thurid.
|
||
|
You knew it before when on the cruiser's deck you saw me
|
||
|
slay three of your comrades."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I would that you had dispatched me at the same time," he said.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come, come!" I cried. "There is hope yet. Neither of us is dead.
|
||
|
We are great fighters. Why not win to freedom?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He looked at me in amazement.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You know not of what you speak," he replied. "Issus is omnipotent.
|
||
|
Issus is omniscient. She hears now the words you speak.
|
||
|
She knows the thoughts you think. It is sacrilege even
|
||
|
to dream of breaking her commands."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Rot, Xodar," I ejaculated impatiently.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He sprang to his feet in horror.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The curse of Issus will fall upon you," he cried.
|
||
|
"In another instant you will be smitten down, writhing
|
||
|
to your death in horrible agony."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do you believe that, Xodar?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Of course; who would dare doubt?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I doubt; yes, and further, I deny," I said. "Why, Xodar,
|
||
|
you tell me that she even knows my thoughts. The red men
|
||
|
have all had that power for ages. And another wonderful power.
|
||
|
They can shut their minds so that none may read their thoughts.
|
||
|
I learned the first secret years ago; the other I never had to learn,
|
||
|
since upon all Barsoom is none who can read what passes in the
|
||
|
secret chambers of my brain.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Your goddess cannot read my thoughts; nor can she
|
||
|
read yours when you are out of sight, unless you will it.
|
||
|
Had she been able to read mine, I am afraid that her pride
|
||
|
would have suffered a rather severe shock when I turned at
|
||
|
her command to 'gaze upon the holy vision of her radiant face.'"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What do you mean?" he whispered in an affrighted
|
||
|
voice, so low that I could scarcely hear him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I mean that I thought her the most repulsive and vilely
|
||
|
hideous creature my eyes ever had rested upon."
|
||
|
|
||
|
For a moment he eyed me in horror-stricken amazement,
|
||
|
and then with a cry of "Blasphemer" he sprang upon me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I did not wish to strike him again, nor was it necessary,
|
||
|
since he was unarmed and therefore quite harmless to me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As he came I grasped his left wrist with my left hand,
|
||
|
and, swinging my right arm about his left shoulder,
|
||
|
caught him beneath the chin with my elbow and bore
|
||
|
him backward across my thigh.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There he hung helpless for a moment, glaring up at me
|
||
|
in impotent rage.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Xodar," I said, "let us be friends. For a year, possibly,
|
||
|
we may be forced to live together in the narrow confines of
|
||
|
this tiny room. I am sorry to have offended you, but I could
|
||
|
not dream that one who had suffered from the cruel injustice
|
||
|
of Issus still could believe her divine.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I will say a few more words, Xodar, with no intent
|
||
|
to wound your feelings further, but rather that you may
|
||
|
give thought to the fact that while we live we are still more
|
||
|
the arbiters of our own fate than is any god.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Issus, you see, has not struck me dead, nor is she rescuing
|
||
|
her faithful Xodar from the clutches of the unbeliever who
|
||
|
defamed her fair beauty. No, Xodar, your Issus is a mortal
|
||
|
old woman. Once out of her clutches and she cannot harm you.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"With your knowledge of this strange land, and my knowledge
|
||
|
of the outer world, two such fighting-men as you and I
|
||
|
should be able to win our way to freedom. Even though we
|
||
|
died in the attempt, would not our memories be fairer than
|
||
|
as though we remained in servile fear to be butchered by a
|
||
|
cruel and unjust tyrant--call her goddess or mortal, as you will."
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I finished I raised Xodar to his feet and released him.
|
||
|
He did not renew the attack upon me, nor did he speak.
|
||
|
Instead, he walked toward the bench, and, sinking down upon it,
|
||
|
remained lost in deep thought for hours.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A long time afterward I heard a soft sound at the doorway
|
||
|
leading to one of the other apartments, and, looking up,
|
||
|
beheld the red Martian youth gazing intently at us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Kaor," I cried, after the red Martian manner of greeting.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Kaor," he replied. "What do you here?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I await my death, I presume," I replied with a wry smile.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He too smiled, a brave and winning smile.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I also," he said. "Mine will come soon. I looked upon
|
||
|
the radiant beauty of Issus nearly a year since. It has
|
||
|
always been a source of keen wonder to me that I did not
|
||
|
drop dead at the first sight of that hideous countenance.
|
||
|
And her belly! By my first ancestor, but never was there
|
||
|
so grotesque a figure in all the universe. That they should
|
||
|
call such a one Goddess of Life Eternal, Goddess of Death,
|
||
|
Mother of the Nearer Moon, and fifty other equally
|
||
|
impossible titles, is quite beyond me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How came you here?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is very simple. I was flying a one-man air scout far to
|
||
|
the south when the brilliant idea occurred to me that I should
|
||
|
like to search for the Lost Sea of Korus which tradition
|
||
|
places near to the south pole. I must have inherited from my
|
||
|
father a wild lust for adventure, as well as a hollow where
|
||
|
my bump of reverence should be.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I had reached the area of eternal ice when my port
|
||
|
propeller jammed, and I dropped to the ground to make repairs.
|
||
|
Before I knew it the air was black with fliers, and a
|
||
|
hundred of these First Born devils were leaping to the
|
||
|
ground all about me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"With drawn swords they made for me, but before I went down
|
||
|
beneath them they had tasted of the steel of my father's
|
||
|
sword, and I had given such an account of myself as I know
|
||
|
would have pleased my sire had he lived to witness it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Your father is dead?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He died before the shell broke to let me step out into a
|
||
|
world that has been very good to me. But for the sorrow
|
||
|
that I had never the honour to know my father, I have been
|
||
|
very happy. My only sorrow now is that my mother must
|
||
|
mourn me as she has for ten long years mourned my father."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Who was your father?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He was about to reply when the outer door of our prison
|
||
|
opened and a burly guard entered and ordered him to his
|
||
|
own quarters for the night, locking the door after him
|
||
|
as he passed through into the further chamber.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is Issus' wish that you two be confined in the same
|
||
|
room," said the guard when he had returned to our cell.
|
||
|
"This cowardly slave of a slave is to serve you well,"
|
||
|
he said to me, indicating Xodar with a wave of his hand.
|
||
|
"If he does not, you are to beat him into submission.
|
||
|
It is Issus' wish that you heap upon him every indignity
|
||
|
and degradation of which you can conceive."
|
||
|
|
||
|
With these words he left us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Xodar still sat with his face buried in his hands. I walked
|
||
|
to his side and placed my hand upon his shoulder.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Xodar," I said, "you have heard the commands of Issus,
|
||
|
but you need not fear that I shall attempt to put them
|
||
|
into execution. You are a brave man, Xodar. It is your own
|
||
|
affair if you wish to be persecuted and humiliated; but
|
||
|
were I you I should assert my manhood and defy my enemies."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have been thinking very hard, John Carter," he said,
|
||
|
"of all the new ideas you gave me a few hours since. Little
|
||
|
by little I have been piecing together the things that you
|
||
|
said which sounded blasphemous to me then with the things
|
||
|
that I have seen in my past life and dared not even think
|
||
|
about for fear of bringing down upon me the wrath of Issus.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I believe now that she is a fraud; no more divine than
|
||
|
you or I. More I am willing to concede--that the First Born
|
||
|
are no holier than the Holy Therns, nor the Holy Therns
|
||
|
more holy than the red men.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The whole fabric of our religion is based on superstitious
|
||
|
belief in lies that have been foisted upon us for ages by
|
||
|
those directly above us, to whose personal profit and
|
||
|
aggrandizement it was to have us continue to believe as
|
||
|
they wished us to believe.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am ready to cast off the ties that have bound me. I am
|
||
|
ready to defy Issus herself; but what will it avail us?
|
||
|
Be the First Born gods or mortals, they are a powerful race,
|
||
|
and we are as fast in their clutches as though we were already dead.
|
||
|
There is no escape."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have escaped from bad plights in the past, my friend,"
|
||
|
I replied; "nor while life is in me shall I despair of escaping
|
||
|
from the Isle of Shador and the Sea of Omean."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But we cannot escape even from the four walls of our
|
||
|
prison," urged Xodar. "Test this flint-like surface," he cried,
|
||
|
smiting the solid rock that confined us. "And look upon this
|
||
|
polished surface; none could cling to it to reach the top."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I smiled.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That is the least of our troubles, Xodar," I replied. "I will
|
||
|
guarantee to scale the wall and take you with me, if you will
|
||
|
help with your knowledge of the customs here to appoint the best
|
||
|
time for the attempt, and guide me to the shaft that lets from the
|
||
|
dome of this abysmal sea to the light of God's pure air above."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Night time is the best and offers the only slender chance
|
||
|
we have, for then men sleep, and only a dozing watch nods
|
||
|
in the tops of the battleships. No watch is kept upon the
|
||
|
cruisers and smaller craft. The watchers upon the larger
|
||
|
vessels see to all about them. It is night now."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But," I exclaimed, "it is not dark! How can it be night, then?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He smiled.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You forget," he said, "that we are far below ground.
|
||
|
The light of the sun never penetrates here. There are
|
||
|
no moons and no stars reflected in the bosom of Omean.
|
||
|
The phosphorescent light you now see pervading this great
|
||
|
subterranean vault emanates from the rocks that form its dome;
|
||
|
it is always thus upon Omean, just as the billows are always
|
||
|
as you see them--rolling, ever rolling over a windless sea.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"At the appointed hour of night upon the world above,
|
||
|
the men whose duties hold them here sleep, but the light is
|
||
|
ever the same."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It will make escape more difficult," I said, and then I
|
||
|
shrugged my shoulders; for what, pray, is the pleasure of
|
||
|
doing an easy thing?
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Let us sleep on it to-night," said Xodar. "A plan may
|
||
|
come with our awakening."
|
||
|
|
||
|
So we threw ourselves upon the hard stone floor of our
|
||
|
prison and slept the sleep of tired men.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XI
|
||
|
|
||
|
WHEN HELL BROKE LOOSE
|
||
|
|
||
|
Early the next morning Xodar and I commenced work
|
||
|
upon our plans for escape. First I had him sketch upon the
|
||
|
stone floor of our cell as accurate a map of the south
|
||
|
polar regions as was possible with the crude instruments
|
||
|
at our disposal--a buckle from my harness, and the sharp
|
||
|
edge of the wondrous gem I had taken from Sator Throg.
|
||
|
|
||
|
From this I computed the general direction of Helium and the
|
||
|
distance at which it lay from the opening which led to Omean.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then I had him draw a map of Omean, indicating plainly
|
||
|
the position of Shador and of the opening in the dome which
|
||
|
led to the outer world.
|
||
|
|
||
|
These I studied until they were indelibly imprinted in my
|
||
|
memory. From Xodar I learned the duties and customs of
|
||
|
the guards who patrolled Shador. It seemed that during the
|
||
|
hours set aside for sleep only one man was on duty at a
|
||
|
time. He paced a beat that passed around the prison, at a
|
||
|
distance of about a hundred feet from the building.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The pace of the sentries, Xodar said, was very slow,
|
||
|
requiring nearly ten minutes to make a single round.
|
||
|
This meant that for practically five minutes at a time each
|
||
|
side of the prison was unguarded as the sentry pursued his
|
||
|
snail like pace upon the opposite side.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This information you ask," said Xodar, "will be all very
|
||
|
valuable AFTER we get out, but nothing that you have
|
||
|
asked has any bearing on that first and most important
|
||
|
consideration."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We will get out all right," I replied, laughing. "Leave that to me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"When shall we make the attempt?" he asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The first night that finds a small craft moored near
|
||
|
the shore of Shador," I replied.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But how will you know that any craft is moored near
|
||
|
Shador? The windows are far beyond our reach."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Not so, friend Xodar; look!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
With a bound I sprang to the bars of the window opposite
|
||
|
us, and took a quick survey of the scene without.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Several small craft and two large battleships lay within
|
||
|
a hundred yards of Shador.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"To-night," I thought, and was just about to voice my
|
||
|
decision to Xodar, when, without warning, the door of our
|
||
|
prison opened and a guard stepped in.
|
||
|
|
||
|
If the fellow saw me there our chances of escape might
|
||
|
quickly go glimmering, for I knew that they would put me
|
||
|
in irons if they had the slightest conception of the wonderful
|
||
|
agility which my earthly muscles gave me upon Mars.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The man had entered and was standing facing the centre
|
||
|
of the room, so that his back was toward me. Five feet
|
||
|
above me was the top of a partition wall separating our
|
||
|
cell from the next.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was my only chance to escape detection. If the
|
||
|
fellow turned, I was lost; nor could I have dropped to the
|
||
|
floor undetected, since he was no nearly below me that
|
||
|
I would have struck him had I done so.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Where is the white man?" cried the guard of Xodar.
|
||
|
"Issus commands his presence." He started to turn to see if
|
||
|
I were in another part of the cell.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I scrambled up the iron grating of the window until I
|
||
|
could catch a good footing on the sill with one foot; then I
|
||
|
let go my hold and sprang for the partition top.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What was that?" I heard the deep voice of the black
|
||
|
bellow as my metal grated against the stone wall as I slipped
|
||
|
over. Then I dropped lightly to the floor of the cell beyond.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Where is the white slave?" again cried the guard.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I know not," replied Xodar. "He was here even as you
|
||
|
entered. I am not his keeper--go find him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The black grumbled something that I could not understand,
|
||
|
and then I heard him unlocking the door into one
|
||
|
of the other cells on the further side. Listening intently,
|
||
|
I caught the sound as the door closed behind him. Then I
|
||
|
sprang once more to the top of the partition and dropped
|
||
|
into my own cell beside the astonished Xodar.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do you see now how we will escape?" I asked him in a whisper.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I see how you may," he replied, "but I am no wiser than before
|
||
|
as to how I am to pass these walls. Certain it is that I cannot
|
||
|
bounce over them as you do."
|
||
|
|
||
|
We heard the guard moving about from cell to cell, and
|
||
|
finally, his rounds completed, he again entered ours.
|
||
|
When his eyes fell upon me they fairly bulged from his head.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"By the shell of my first ancestor!" he roared.
|
||
|
"Where have you been?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have been in prison since you put me here yesterday,"
|
||
|
I answered. "I was in this room when you entered.
|
||
|
You had better look to your eyesight."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He glared at me in mingled rage and relief.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come," he said. "Issus commands your presence."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He conducted me outside the prison, leaving Xodar behind.
|
||
|
There we found several other guards, and with them the
|
||
|
red Martian youth who occupied another cell upon Shador.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The journey I had taken to the Temple of Issus on the
|
||
|
preceding day was repeated. The guards kept the red boy
|
||
|
and myself separated, so that we had no opportunity to continue
|
||
|
the conversation that had been interrupted the previous night.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The youth's face had haunted me. Where had I seen
|
||
|
him before. There was something strangely familiar in
|
||
|
every line of him; in his carriage, his manner of speaking,
|
||
|
his gestures. I could have sworn that I knew him, and yet
|
||
|
I knew too that I had never seen him before.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When we reached the gardens of Issus we were led away
|
||
|
from the temple instead of toward it. The way wound through
|
||
|
enchanted parks to a mighty wall that towered a hundred
|
||
|
feet in air.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Massive gates gave egress upon a small plain, surrounded
|
||
|
by the same gorgeous forests that I had seen at the foot of
|
||
|
the Golden Cliffs.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Crowds of blacks were strolling in the same direction
|
||
|
that our guards were leading us, and with them mingled
|
||
|
my old friends the plant men and great white apes.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The brutal beasts moved among the crowd as pet dogs
|
||
|
might. If they were in the way the blacks pushed them
|
||
|
roughly to one side, or whacked them with the flat of a
|
||
|
sword, and the animals slunk away as in great fear.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Presently we came upon our destination, a great amphitheatre
|
||
|
situated at the further edge of the plain, and about half a
|
||
|
mile beyond the garden walls.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Through a massive arched gateway the blacks poured in
|
||
|
to take their seats, while our guards led us to a smaller
|
||
|
entrance near one end of the structure.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Through this we passed into an enclosure beneath the
|
||
|
seats, where we found a number of other prisoners herded
|
||
|
together under guard. Some of them were in irons, but
|
||
|
for the most part they seemed sufficiently awed by the
|
||
|
presence of their guards to preclude any possibility of
|
||
|
attempted escape.
|
||
|
|
||
|
During the trip from Shador I had had no opportunity
|
||
|
to talk with my fellow-prisoner, but now that we were safely
|
||
|
within the barred paddock our guards abated their watchfulness,
|
||
|
with the result that I found myself able to approach the red
|
||
|
Martian youth for whom I felt such a strange attraction.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What is the object of this assembly?" I asked him.
|
||
|
"Are we to fight for the edification of the First Born,
|
||
|
or is it something worse than that?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is a part of the monthly rites of Issus," he replied,
|
||
|
"in which black men wash the sins from their souls in the
|
||
|
blood of men from the outer world. If, perchance, the
|
||
|
black is killed, it is evidence of his disloyalty to Issus--
|
||
|
the unpardonable sin. If he lives through the contest he
|
||
|
is held acquitted of the charge that forced the sentence of
|
||
|
the rites, as it is called, upon him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The forms of combat vary. A number of us may be
|
||
|
pitted together against an equal number, or twice the
|
||
|
number of blacks; or singly we may be sent forth to
|
||
|
face wild beasts, or some famous black warrior."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And if we are victorious," I asked, "what then--freedom?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He laughed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Freedom, forsooth. The only freedom for us death.
|
||
|
None who enters the domains of the First Born ever leave.
|
||
|
If we prove able fighters we are permitted to fight often.
|
||
|
If we are not mighty fighters--" He shrugged his shoulders.
|
||
|
"Sooner or later we die in the arena."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And you have fought often?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Very often," he replied. "It is my only pleasure. Some
|
||
|
hundred black devils have I accounted for during nearly a
|
||
|
year of the rites of Issus. My mother would be very proud
|
||
|
could she only know how well I have maintained the traditions
|
||
|
of my father's prowess."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Your father must have been a mighty warrior!" I said.
|
||
|
"I have known most of the warriors of Barsoom in my
|
||
|
time; doubtless I knew him. Who was he?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My father was--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come, calots!" cried the rough voice of a guard. "To
|
||
|
the slaughter with you," and roughly we were hustled to
|
||
|
the steep incline that led to the chambers far below which
|
||
|
let out upon the arena.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The amphitheatre, like all I had ever seen upon Barsoom,
|
||
|
was built in a large excavation. Only the highest seats,
|
||
|
which formed the low wall surrounding the pit, were above the
|
||
|
level of the ground. The arena itself was far below the surface.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Just beneath the lowest tier of seats was a series of
|
||
|
barred cages on a level with the surface of the arena. Into
|
||
|
these we were herded. But, unfortunately, my youthful friend
|
||
|
was not of those who occupied a cage with me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Directly opposite my cage was the throne of Issus. Here
|
||
|
the horrid creature squatted, surrounded by a hundred slave
|
||
|
maidens sparkling in jewelled trappings. Brilliant cloths of
|
||
|
many hues and strange patterns formed the soft cushion
|
||
|
covering of the dais upon which they reclined about her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
On four sides of the throne and several feet below it stood
|
||
|
three solid ranks of heavily armed soldiery, elbow to elbow.
|
||
|
In front of these were the high dignitaries of this mock
|
||
|
heaven--gleaming blacks bedecked with precious stones, upon
|
||
|
their foreheads the insignia of their rank set in circles of gold.
|
||
|
|
||
|
On both sides of the throne stretched a solid mass
|
||
|
of humanity from top to bottom of the amphitheatre.
|
||
|
There were as many women as men, and each was clothed in
|
||
|
the wondrously wrought harness of his station and his house.
|
||
|
With each black was from one to three slaves, drawn from
|
||
|
the domains of the therns and from the outer world. The
|
||
|
blacks are all "noble." There is no peasantry among the
|
||
|
First Born. Even the lowest soldier is a god, and has his
|
||
|
slaves to wait upon him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The First Born do no work. The men fight--that is a sacred
|
||
|
privilege and duty; to fight and die for Issus. The women do
|
||
|
nothing, absolutely nothing. Slaves wash them, slaves dress
|
||
|
them, slaves feed them. There are some, even, who have
|
||
|
slaves that talk for them, and I saw one who sat during
|
||
|
the rites with closed eyes while a slave narrated to her the
|
||
|
events that were transpiring within the arena.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The first event of the day was the Tribute to Issus. It
|
||
|
marked the end of those poor unfortunates who had looked
|
||
|
upon the divine glory of the goddess a full year before.
|
||
|
There were ten of them--splendid beauties from the proud
|
||
|
courts of mighty Jeddaks and from the temples of the
|
||
|
Holy Therns. For a year they had served in the retinue of
|
||
|
Issus; to-day they were to pay the price of this divine
|
||
|
preferment with their lives; tomorrow they would grace the
|
||
|
tables of the court functionaries.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A huge black entered the arena with the young women.
|
||
|
Carefully he inspected them, felt of their limbs and poked
|
||
|
them in the ribs. Presently he selected one of their number
|
||
|
whom he led before the throne of Issus. He addressed
|
||
|
some words to the goddess which I could not hear. Issus
|
||
|
nodded her head. The black raised his hands above his head
|
||
|
in token of salute, grasped the girl by the wrist, and dragged
|
||
|
her from the arena through a small doorway below the throne.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Issus will dine well to-night," said a prisoner beside me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What do you mean?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That was her dinner that old Thabis is taking to the
|
||
|
kitchens. Didst not note how carefully he selected the
|
||
|
plumpest and tenderest of the lot?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I growled out my curses on the monster sitting opposite
|
||
|
us on the gorgeous throne.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Fume not," admonished my companion; "you will see
|
||
|
far worse than that if you live even a month among the
|
||
|
First Born."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I turned again in time to see the gate of a nearby cage
|
||
|
thrown open and three monstrous white apes spring into the
|
||
|
arena. The girls shrank in a frightened group in the centre
|
||
|
of the enclosure.
|
||
|
|
||
|
One was on her knees with imploring hands outstretched
|
||
|
toward Issus; but the hideous deity only leaned further
|
||
|
forward in keener anticipation of the entertainment to come.
|
||
|
At length the apes spied the huddled knot of terror-stricken
|
||
|
maidens and with demoniacal shrieks of bestial frenzy,
|
||
|
charged upon them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A wave of mad fury surged over me. The cruel cowardliness
|
||
|
of the power-drunk creature whose malignant mind conceived
|
||
|
such frightful forms of torture stirred to their uttermost
|
||
|
depths my resentment and my manhood. The blood-red haze
|
||
|
that presaged death to my foes swam before my eyes.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The guard lolled before the unbarred gate of the cage
|
||
|
which confined me. What need of bars, indeed, to keep
|
||
|
those poor victims from rushing into the arena which the
|
||
|
edict of the gods had appointed as their death place!
|
||
|
|
||
|
A single blow sent the black unconscious to the ground.
|
||
|
Snatching up his long-sword, I sprang into the arena. The
|
||
|
apes were almost upon the maidens, but a couple of mighty
|
||
|
bounds were all my earthly muscles required to carry me
|
||
|
to the centre of the sand-strewn floor.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For an instant silence reigned in the great amphitheatre,
|
||
|
then a wild shout arose from the cages of the doomed.
|
||
|
My long-sword circled whirring through the air, and a great
|
||
|
ape sprawled, headless, at the feet of the fainting girls.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The other apes turned now upon me, and as I stood facing
|
||
|
them a sullen roar from the audience answered the wild cheers
|
||
|
from the cages. From the tail of my eye I saw a score
|
||
|
of guards rushing across the glistening sand toward me.
|
||
|
Then a figure broke from one of the cages behind them.
|
||
|
It was the youth whose personality so fascinated me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He paused a moment before the cages, with upraised sword.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come, men of the outer world!" he shouted. "Let us
|
||
|
make our deaths worth while, and at the back of this
|
||
|
unknown warrior turn this day's Tribute to Issus into an
|
||
|
orgy of revenge that will echo through the ages and cause
|
||
|
black skins to blanch at each repetition of the rites of Issus.
|
||
|
Come! The racks without your cages are filled with blades."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Without waiting to note the outcome of his plea, he
|
||
|
turned and bounded toward me. From every cage that
|
||
|
harboured red men a thunderous shout went up in answer
|
||
|
to his exhortation. The inner guards went down beneath
|
||
|
howling mobs, and the cages vomited forth their inmates hot
|
||
|
with the lust to kill.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The racks that stood without were stripped of the swords
|
||
|
with which the prisoners were to have been armed to enter
|
||
|
their allotted combats, and a swarm of determined warriors
|
||
|
sped to our support.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The great apes, towering in all their fifteen feet of height,
|
||
|
had gone down before my sword while the charging guards
|
||
|
were still some distance away. Close behind them pursued
|
||
|
the youth. At my back were the young girls, and as it
|
||
|
was in their service that I fought, I remained standing
|
||
|
there to meet my inevitable death, but with the determination
|
||
|
to give such an account of myself as would long be remembered
|
||
|
in the land of the First Born.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I noted the marvellous speed of the young red man as
|
||
|
he raced after the guards. Never had I seen such speed in
|
||
|
any Martian. His leaps and bounds were little short of those
|
||
|
which my earthly muscles had produced to create such awe
|
||
|
and respect on the part of the green Martians into whose
|
||
|
hands I had fallen on that long-gone day that had seen my
|
||
|
first advent upon Mars.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The guards had not reached me when he fell upon them
|
||
|
from the rear, and as they turned, thinking from the
|
||
|
fierceness of his onslaught that a dozen were attacking them,
|
||
|
I rushed them from my side.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In the rapid fighting that followed I had little chance
|
||
|
to note aught else than the movements of my immediate
|
||
|
adversaries, but now and again I caught a fleeting glimpse
|
||
|
of a purring sword and a lightly springing figure of sinewy
|
||
|
steel that filled my heart with a strange yearning and a
|
||
|
mighty but unaccountable pride.
|
||
|
|
||
|
On the handsome face of the boy a grim smile played,
|
||
|
and ever and anon he threw a taunting challenge to the
|
||
|
foes that faced him. In this and other ways his manner of
|
||
|
fighting was similar to that which had always marked me
|
||
|
on the field of combat.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Perhaps it was this vague likeness which made me love
|
||
|
the boy, while the awful havoc that his sword played amongst
|
||
|
the blacks filled my soul with a tremendous respect for him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For my part, I was fighting as I had fought a thousand
|
||
|
times before--now sidestepping a wicked thrust, now stepping
|
||
|
quickly in to let my sword's point drink deep in a foeman's
|
||
|
heart, before it buried itself in the throat of his companion.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We were having a merry time of it, we two, when a great
|
||
|
body of Issus' own guards were ordered into the arena.
|
||
|
On they came with fierce cries, while from every side the
|
||
|
armed prisoners swarmed upon them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For half an hour it was as though all hell had broken loose.
|
||
|
In the walled confines of the arena we fought in an
|
||
|
inextricable mass--howling, cursing, blood-streaked
|
||
|
demons; and ever the sword of the young red man flashed
|
||
|
beside me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Slowly and by repeated commands I had succeeded in drawing
|
||
|
the prisoners into a rough formation about us, so that at
|
||
|
last we fought formed into a rude circle in the centre of
|
||
|
which were the doomed maids.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Many had gone down on both sides, but by far the greater
|
||
|
havoc had been wrought in the ranks of the guards of Issus.
|
||
|
I could see messengers running swiftly through the audience,
|
||
|
and as they passed the nobles there unsheathed their swords
|
||
|
and sprang into the arena. They were going to annihilate
|
||
|
us by force of numbers--that was quite evidently their plan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I caught a glimpse of Issus leaning far forward upon her
|
||
|
throne, her hideous countenance distorted in a horrid
|
||
|
grimace of hate and rage, in which I thought I could
|
||
|
distinguish an expression of fear. It was that face
|
||
|
that inspired me to the thing that followed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Quickly I ordered fifty of the prisoners to drop back
|
||
|
behind us and form a new circle about the maidens.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Remain and protect them until I return," I commanded.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then, turning to those who formed the outer line, I cried,
|
||
|
"Down with Issus! Follow me to the throne; we will reap
|
||
|
vengeance where vengeance is deserved."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The youth at my side was the first to take up the cry of
|
||
|
"Down with Issus!" and then at my back and from all
|
||
|
sides rose a hoarse shout, "To the throne! To the throne!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
As one man we moved, an irresistible fighting mass, over
|
||
|
the bodies of dead and dying foes toward the gorgeous
|
||
|
throne of the Martian deity. Hordes of the doughtiest
|
||
|
fighting-men of the First Born poured from the audience to
|
||
|
check our progress. We mowed them down before us as they
|
||
|
had been paper men.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"To the seats, some of you!" I cried as we approached
|
||
|
the arena's barrier wall. "Ten of us can take the throne,"
|
||
|
for I had seen that Issus' guards had for the most part
|
||
|
entered the fray within the arena.
|
||
|
|
||
|
On both sides of me the prisoners broke to left and
|
||
|
right for the seats, vaulting the low wall with dripping
|
||
|
swords lusting for the crowded victims who awaited them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In another moment the entire amphitheatre was filled
|
||
|
with the shrieks of the dying and the wounded, mingled with
|
||
|
the clash of arms and triumphant shouts of the victors.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Side by side the young red man and I, with perhaps a
|
||
|
dozen others, fought our way to the foot of the throne.
|
||
|
The remaining guards, reinforced by the high dignitaries
|
||
|
and nobles of the First Born, closed in between us and
|
||
|
Issus, who sat leaning far forward upon her carved sorapus
|
||
|
bench, now screaming high-pitched commands to her following,
|
||
|
now hurling blighting curses upon those who sought to
|
||
|
desecrate her godhood.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The frightened slaves about her trembled in wide-eyed
|
||
|
expectancy, knowing not whether to pray for our victory
|
||
|
or our defeat. Several among them, proud daughters no
|
||
|
doubt of some of Barsoom's noblest warriors, snatched
|
||
|
swords from the hands of the fallen and fell upon the
|
||
|
guards of Issus, but they were soon cut down; glorious
|
||
|
martyrs to a hopeless cause.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The men with us fought well, but never since Tars Tarkas
|
||
|
and I fought out that long, hot afternoon shoulder to
|
||
|
shoulder against the hordes of Warhoon in the dead sea
|
||
|
bottom before Thark, had I seen two men fight to such
|
||
|
good purpose and with such unconquerable ferocity as
|
||
|
the young red man and I fought that day before the throne
|
||
|
of Issus, Goddess of Death, and of Life Eternal.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Man by man those who stood between us and the carven
|
||
|
sorapus wood bench went down before our blades. Others
|
||
|
swarmed in to fill the breach, but inch by inch, foot by
|
||
|
foot we won nearer and nearer to our goal.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Presently a cry went up from a section of the stands
|
||
|
near by--"Rise slaves!" "Rise slaves!" it rose and fell until
|
||
|
it swelled to a mighty volume of sound that swept in great
|
||
|
billows around the entire amphitheatre.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For an instant, as though by common assent, we ceased
|
||
|
our fighting to look for the meaning of this new note nor
|
||
|
did it take but a moment to translate its significance. In
|
||
|
all parts of the structure the female slaves were falling
|
||
|
upon their masters with whatever weapon came first to hand.
|
||
|
A dagger snatched from the harness of her mistress was
|
||
|
waved aloft by some fair slave, its shimmering blade crimson
|
||
|
with the lifeblood of its owner; swords plucked from the
|
||
|
bodies of the dead about them; heavy ornaments which
|
||
|
could be turned into bludgeons--such were the implements
|
||
|
with which these fair women wreaked the long-pent vengeance
|
||
|
which at best could but partially recompense them for the
|
||
|
unspeakable cruelties and indignities which their black masters
|
||
|
had heaped upon them. And those who could find no other weapons
|
||
|
used their strong fingers and their gleaming teeth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was at once a sight to make one shudder and to cheer;
|
||
|
but in a brief second we were engaged once more in our
|
||
|
own battle with only the unquenchable battle cry of the
|
||
|
women to remind us that they still fought--"Rise slaves!"
|
||
|
"Rise slaves!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Only a single thin rank of men now stood between us
|
||
|
and Issus. Her face was blue with terror. Foam flecked
|
||
|
her lips. She seemed too paralysed with fear to move.
|
||
|
Only the youth and I fought now. The others all had
|
||
|
fallen, and I was like to have gone down too from a nasty
|
||
|
long-sword cut had not a hand reached out from behind
|
||
|
my adversary and clutched his elbow as the blade was
|
||
|
falling upon me. The youth sprang to my side and ran
|
||
|
his sword through the fellow before he could recover to
|
||
|
deliver another blow.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I should have died even then but for that as my sword
|
||
|
was tight wedged in the breastbone of a Dator of the First
|
||
|
Born. As the fellow went down I snatched his sword from
|
||
|
him and over his prostrate body looked into the eyes of
|
||
|
the one whose quick hand had saved me from the first cut of
|
||
|
his sword--it was Phaidor, daughter of Matai Shang.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Fly, my Prince!" she cried. "It is useless to fight them
|
||
|
longer. All within the arena are dead. All who charged
|
||
|
the throne are dead but you and this youth. Only among
|
||
|
the seats are there left any of your fighting-men, and they
|
||
|
and the slave women are fast being cut down. Listen! You
|
||
|
can scarce hear the battle-cry of the women now for nearly
|
||
|
all are dead. For each one of you there are ten thousand
|
||
|
blacks within the domains of the First Born. Break for the
|
||
|
open and the sea of Korus. With your mighty sword arm
|
||
|
you may yet win to the Golden Cliffs and the templed gardens
|
||
|
of the Holy Therns. There tell your story to Matai Shang,
|
||
|
my father. He will keep you, and together you may find a way
|
||
|
to rescue me. Fly while there is yet a bare chance for flight."
|
||
|
|
||
|
But that was not my mission, nor could I see much to
|
||
|
be preferred in the cruel hospitality of the Holy Therns
|
||
|
to that of the First Born.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Down with Issus!" I shouted, and together the boy and
|
||
|
I took up the fight once more. Two blacks went down
|
||
|
with our swords in their vitals, and we stood face to face
|
||
|
with Issus. As my sword went up to end her horrid career
|
||
|
her paralysis left her, and with an ear-piercing shriek she
|
||
|
turned to flee. Directly behind her a black gulf suddenly
|
||
|
yawned in the flooring of the dais. She sprang for the
|
||
|
opening with the youth and I close at her heels. Her scattered
|
||
|
guard rallied at her cry and rushed for us. A blow fell
|
||
|
upon the head of the youth. He staggered and would have
|
||
|
fallen, but I caught him in my left arm and turned to face
|
||
|
an infuriated mob of religious fanatics crazed by the affront
|
||
|
I had put upon their goddess, just as Issus disappeared into
|
||
|
the black depths beneath me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XII
|
||
|
|
||
|
DOOMED TO DIE
|
||
|
|
||
|
For an instant I stood there before they fell upon me, but
|
||
|
the first rush of them forced me back a step or two. My
|
||
|
foot felt for the floor but found only empty space. I had
|
||
|
backed into the pit which had received Issus. For a second
|
||
|
I toppled there upon the brink. Then I too with the boy
|
||
|
still tightly clutched in my arms pitched backward into the
|
||
|
black abyss.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We struck a polished chute, the opening above us closed
|
||
|
as magically as it had opened, and we shot down, unharmed,
|
||
|
into a dimly lighted apartment far below the arena.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I rose to my feet the first thing I saw was the malignant
|
||
|
countenance of Issus glaring at me through the heavy bars
|
||
|
of a grated door at one side of the chamber.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Rash mortal!" she shrilled. "You shall pay the awful
|
||
|
penalty for your blasphemy in this secret cell. Here you shall
|
||
|
lie alone and in darkness with the carcass of your accomplice
|
||
|
festering in its rottenness by your side, until crazed by
|
||
|
loneliness and hunger you feed upon the crawling maggots that
|
||
|
were once a man."
|
||
|
|
||
|
That was all. In another instant she was gone, and the dim
|
||
|
light which had filled the cell faded into Cimmerian blackness.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Pleasant old lady," said a voice at my side.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Who speaks?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"'Tis I, your companion, who has had the honour this day of
|
||
|
fighting shoulder to shoulder with the greatest warrior that
|
||
|
ever wore metal upon Barsoom."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I thank God that you are not dead," I said. "I feared for
|
||
|
that nasty cut upon your head."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It but stunned me," he replied. "A mere scratch."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Maybe it were as well had it been final," I said. "We
|
||
|
seem to be in a pretty fix here with a splendid chance of
|
||
|
dying of starvation and thirst."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Where are we?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Beneath the arena," I replied. "We tumbled down the
|
||
|
shaft that swallowed Issus as she was almost at our mercy."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He laughed a low laugh of pleasure and relief, and then
|
||
|
reaching out through the inky blackness he sought my
|
||
|
shoulder and pulled my ear close to his mouth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Nothing could be better," he whispered. "There are secrets
|
||
|
within the secrets of Issus of which Issus herself does not dream."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What do you mean?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I laboured with the other slaves a year since in the
|
||
|
remodelling of these subterranean galleries, and at that
|
||
|
time we found below these an ancient system of corridors
|
||
|
and chambers that had been sealed up for ages. The blacks
|
||
|
in charge of the work explored them, taking several of us
|
||
|
along to do whatever work there might be occasion for.
|
||
|
I know the entire system perfectly.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There are miles of corridors honeycombing the ground beneath
|
||
|
the gardens and the temple itself, and there is one passage
|
||
|
that leads down to and connects with the lower regions that
|
||
|
open on the water shaft that gives passage to Omean.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If we can reach the submarine undetected we may yet
|
||
|
make the sea in which there are many islands where the
|
||
|
blacks never go. There we may live for a time, and who
|
||
|
knows what may transpire to aid us to escape?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He had spoken all in a low whisper, evidently fearing spying
|
||
|
ears even here, and so I answered him in the samesubdued tone.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Lead back to Shador, my friend," I whispered. "Xodar, the
|
||
|
black, is there. We were to attempt our escape together,
|
||
|
so I cannot desert him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No," said the boy, "one cannot desert a friend.
|
||
|
It were better to be recaptured ourselves than that."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then he commenced groping his way about the floor of
|
||
|
the dark chamber searching for the trap that led to the
|
||
|
corridors beneath. At length he summoned me by a low,
|
||
|
"S-s-t," and I crept toward the sound of his voice to
|
||
|
find him kneeling on the brink of an opening in the floor.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There is a drop here of about ten feet," he whispered.
|
||
|
"Hang by your hands and you will alight safely on a level
|
||
|
floor of soft sand."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Very quietly I lowered myself from the inky cell above into the
|
||
|
inky pit below. So utterly dark was it that we could not see
|
||
|
our hands at an inch from our noses. Never, I think, have I known
|
||
|
such complete absence of light as existed in the pits of Issus.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For an instant I hung in mid air. There is a strange sensation
|
||
|
connected with an experience of that nature which is quite
|
||
|
difficult to describe. When the feet tread empty air
|
||
|
and the distance below is shrouded in darkness there is a
|
||
|
feeling akin to panic at the thought of releasing the hold and
|
||
|
taking the plunge into unknown depths.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Although the boy had told me that it was but ten feet to
|
||
|
the floor below I experienced the same thrills as though I
|
||
|
were hanging above a bottomless pit. Then I released my
|
||
|
hold and dropped--four feet to a soft cushion of sand.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The boy followed me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Raise me to your shoulders," he said, "and I will replace the trap."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This done he took me by the hand, leading me very
|
||
|
slowly, with much feeling about and frequent halts to assure
|
||
|
himself that he did not stray into wrong passageways.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Presently we commenced the descent of a very steep incline.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It will not be long," he said, "before we shall have light.
|
||
|
At the lower levels we meet the same strata of phosphorescent
|
||
|
rock that illuminates Omean."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Never shall I forget that trip through the pits of Issus.
|
||
|
While it was devoid of important incidents yet it was
|
||
|
filled for me with a strange charm of excitement and
|
||
|
adventure which I think I must have hinged principally on
|
||
|
the unguessable antiquity of these long-forgotten corridors.
|
||
|
The things which the Stygian darkness hid from my objective
|
||
|
eye could not have been half so wonderful as the pictures
|
||
|
which my imagination wrought as it conjured to life again the
|
||
|
ancient peoples of this dying world and set them once more to
|
||
|
the labours, the intrigues, the mysteries and the cruelties
|
||
|
which they had practised to make their last stand against the
|
||
|
swarming hordes of the dead sea bottoms that had driven
|
||
|
them step by step to the uttermost pinnacle of the world
|
||
|
where they were now intrenched behind an impenetrable
|
||
|
barrier of superstition.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In addition to the green men there had been three principal
|
||
|
races upon Barsoom. The blacks, the whites, and a race
|
||
|
of yellow men. As the waters of the planet dried and the
|
||
|
seas receded, all other resources dwindled until life upon the
|
||
|
planet became a constant battle for survival.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The various races had made war upon one another for
|
||
|
ages, and the three higher types had easily bested the green
|
||
|
savages of the water places of the world, but now that the
|
||
|
receding seas necessitated constant abandonment of their
|
||
|
fortified cities and forced upon them a more or less nomadic
|
||
|
life in which they became separated into smaller communities
|
||
|
they soon fell prey to the fierce hordes of green men.
|
||
|
The result was a partial amalgamation of the blacks, whites
|
||
|
and yellows, the result of which is shown in the present
|
||
|
splendid race of red men.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had always supposed that all traces of the original races
|
||
|
had disappeared from the face of Mars, yet within the past
|
||
|
four days I had found both whites and blacks in great multitudes.
|
||
|
Could it be possible that in some far-off corner of the planet
|
||
|
there still existed a remnant of the ancient race of yellow men?
|
||
|
|
||
|
My reveries were broken in upon by a low exclamation from the boy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"At last, the lighted way," he cried, and looking up I beheld
|
||
|
at a long distance before us a dim radiance.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As we advanced the light increased until presently we
|
||
|
emerged into well-lighted passageways. From then on our
|
||
|
progress was rapid until we came suddenly to the end of a
|
||
|
corridor that let directly upon the ledge surrounding the pool
|
||
|
of the submarine.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The craft lay at her moorings with uncovered hatch.
|
||
|
Raising his finger to his lips and then tapping his sword in a
|
||
|
significant manner, the youth crept noiselessly toward the vessel.
|
||
|
I was close at his heels.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Silently we dropped to the deserted deck, and on hands
|
||
|
and knees crawled toward the hatchway. A stealthy glance
|
||
|
below revealed no guard in sight, and so with the quickness
|
||
|
and the soundlessness of cats we dropped together into the
|
||
|
main cabin of the submarine. Even here was no sign of life.
|
||
|
Quickly we covered and secured the hatch.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then the boy stepped into the pilot house, touched a button
|
||
|
and the boat sank amid swirling waters toward the bottom
|
||
|
of the shaft. Even then there was no scurrying of feet as
|
||
|
we had expected, and while the boy remained to direct the
|
||
|
boat I slid from cabin to cabin in futile search for some
|
||
|
member of the crew. The craft was entirely deserted.
|
||
|
Such good fortune seemed almost unbelievable.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When I returned to the pilot house to report the good
|
||
|
news to my companion he handed me a paper.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This may explain the absence of the crew," he said.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was a radio-aerial message to the commander of the submarine:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The slaves have risen. Come with what men you have and
|
||
|
those that you can gather on the way. Too late to get aid
|
||
|
from Omean. They are massacring all within the amphitheatre.
|
||
|
Issus is threatened. Haste.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"ZITHAD"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Zithad is Dator of the guards of Issus," explained the youth.
|
||
|
"We gave them a bad scare--one that they will not soon forget."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Let us hope that it is but the beginning of the end of Issus," I said.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Only our first ancestor knows," he replied.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We reached the submarine pool in Omean without incident.
|
||
|
Here we debated the wisdom of sinking the craft before
|
||
|
leaving her, but finally decided that it would add nothing
|
||
|
to our chances for escape. There were plenty of blacks on
|
||
|
Omean to thwart us were we apprehended; however many
|
||
|
more might come from the temples and gardens of Issus
|
||
|
would not in any decrease our chances.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We were now in a quandary as to how to pass the guards who
|
||
|
patrolled the island about the pool. At last I hit upon a plan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What is the name or title of the officer in charge of these guards?"
|
||
|
I asked the boy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A fellow named Torith was on duty when we entered this morning,"
|
||
|
he replied.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Good. And what is the name of the commander of the submarine?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yersted."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I found a dispatch blank in the cabin and wrote the following order:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Dator Torith: Return these two slaves at once to Shador.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"YERSTED"
|
||
|
|
||
|
That will be the simpler way to return," I said, smiling, as I
|
||
|
handed the forged order to the boy. "Come, we shall see now
|
||
|
how well it works."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But our swords!" he exclaimed. "What shall we say to explain them?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Since we cannot explain them we shall have to leave them behind us,"
|
||
|
I replied.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Is it not the extreme of rashness to thus put ourselves again,
|
||
|
unarmed, in the power of the First Born?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is the only way," I answered. "You may trust me to find
|
||
|
a way out of the prison of Shador, and I think, once out,
|
||
|
that we shall find no great difficulty in arming ourselves
|
||
|
once more in a country which abounds so plentifully in armed men."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"As you say," he replied with a smile and shrug. "I could not
|
||
|
follow another leader who inspired greater confidence than you.
|
||
|
Come, let us put your ruse to the test."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Boldly we emerged from the hatchway of the craft, leaving
|
||
|
our swords behind us, and strode to the main exit which led
|
||
|
to the sentry's post and the office of the Dator of the guard.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At sight of us the members of the guard sprang forward in
|
||
|
surprise, and with levelled rifles halted us. I held out the
|
||
|
message to one of them. He took it and seeing to whom
|
||
|
it was addressed turned and handed it to Torith who was
|
||
|
emerging from his office to learn the cause of the commotion.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The black read the order, and for a moment eyed us with
|
||
|
evident suspicion.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Where is Dator Yersted?" he asked, and my heart sank
|
||
|
within me, as I cursed myself for a stupid fool in not having
|
||
|
sunk the submarine to make good the lie that I must tell.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"His orders were to return immediately to the temple landing,"
|
||
|
I replied.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Torith took a half step toward the entrance to the pool
|
||
|
as though to corroborate my story. For that instant everything
|
||
|
hung in the balance, for had he done so and found the
|
||
|
empty submarine still lying at her wharf the whole weak
|
||
|
fabric of my concoction would have tumbled about our heads;
|
||
|
but evidently he decided the message must be genuine,
|
||
|
nor indeed was there any good reason to doubt it since it
|
||
|
would scarce have seemed credible to him that two slaves
|
||
|
would voluntarily have given themselves into custody in any
|
||
|
such manner as this. It was the very boldness of the plan
|
||
|
which rendered it successful.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Were you connected with the rising of the slaves?" asked Torith.
|
||
|
"We have just had meagre reports of some such event."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"All were involved," I replied. "But it amounted to little.
|
||
|
The guards quickly overcame and killed the majority of us."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He seemed satisfied with this reply. "Take them to Shador,"
|
||
|
he ordered, turning to one of his subordinates. We entered
|
||
|
a small boat lying beside the island, and in a few minutes
|
||
|
were disembarking upon Shador. Here we were returned to our
|
||
|
respective cells; I with Xodar, the boy by himself; and behind
|
||
|
locked doors we were again prisoners of the First Born.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XIII
|
||
|
|
||
|
A BREAK FOR LIBERTY
|
||
|
|
||
|
Xodar listened in incredulous astonishment to my narration
|
||
|
of the events which had transpired within the arena at the
|
||
|
rites of Issus. He could scarce conceive, even though he had
|
||
|
already professed his doubt as to the deity of Issus, that one
|
||
|
could threaten her with sword in hand and not be blasted into
|
||
|
a thousand fragments by the mere fury of her divine wrath.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is the final proof," he said, at last. "No more is needed
|
||
|
to completely shatter the last remnant of my superstitious
|
||
|
belief in the divinity of Issus. She is only a wicked old woman,
|
||
|
wielding a mighty power for evil through machinations that
|
||
|
have kept her own people and all Barsoom in religious
|
||
|
ignorance for ages."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She is still all-powerful here, however," I replied.
|
||
|
"So it behooves us to leave at the first moment that
|
||
|
appears at all propitious."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I hope that you may find a propitious moment," he said,
|
||
|
with a laugh, "for it is certain that in all my life I have never
|
||
|
seen one in which a prisoner of the First Born might escape."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"To-night will do as well as any," I replied.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It will soon be night," said Xodar. "How may I aid in the adventure?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Can you swim?" I asked him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No slimy silian that haunts the depths of Korus is more
|
||
|
at home in water than is Xodar," he replied.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Good. The red one in all probability cannot swim," I
|
||
|
said, "since there is scarce enough water in all their domains
|
||
|
to float the tiniest craft. One of us therefore will have to
|
||
|
support him through the sea to the craft we select. I had hoped
|
||
|
that we might make the entire distance below the surface,
|
||
|
but I fear that the red youth could not thus perform the
|
||
|
trip. Even the bravest of the brave among them are terrorized
|
||
|
at the mere thought of deep water, for it has been ages since
|
||
|
their forebears saw a lake, a river or a sea."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The red one is to accompany us?" asked Xodar.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is well. Three swords are better than two. Especially
|
||
|
when the third is as mighty as this fellow's. I have seen him
|
||
|
battle in the arena at the rites of Issus many times. Never,
|
||
|
until I saw you fight, had I seen one who seemed unconquerable
|
||
|
even in the face of great odds. One might think you two
|
||
|
master and pupil, or father and son. Come to recall his face
|
||
|
there is a resemblance between you. It is very marked when
|
||
|
you fight--there is the same grim smile, the same maddening
|
||
|
contempt for your adversary apparent in every movement of your
|
||
|
bodies and in every changing expression of your faces."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Be that as it may, Xodar, he is a great fighter. I think
|
||
|
that we will make a trio difficult to overcome, and if my
|
||
|
friend Tars Tarkas, Jeddak of Thark, were but one of us we
|
||
|
could fight our way from one end of Barsoom to the other
|
||
|
even though the whole world were pitted against us."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It will be," said Xodar, "when they find from whence
|
||
|
you have come. That is but one of the superstitions which
|
||
|
Issus has foisted upon a credulous humanity. She works
|
||
|
through the Holy Therns who are as ignorant of her real self
|
||
|
as are the Barsoomians of the outer world. Her decrees are
|
||
|
borne to the therns written in blood upon a strange parchment.
|
||
|
The poor deluded fools think that they are receiving
|
||
|
the revelations of a goddess through some supernatural
|
||
|
agency, since they find these messages upon their guarded
|
||
|
altars to which none could have access without detection.
|
||
|
I myself have borne these messages for Issus for many years.
|
||
|
There is a long tunnel from the temple of Issus to the
|
||
|
principal temple of Matai Shang. It was dug ages ago by
|
||
|
the slaves of the First Born in such utter secrecy that
|
||
|
no thern ever guessed its existence.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The therns for their part have temples dotted about the
|
||
|
entire civilized world. Here priests whom the people never
|
||
|
see communicate the doctrine of the Mysterious River Iss,
|
||
|
the Valley Dor, and the Lost Sea of Korus to persuade the
|
||
|
poor deluded creatures to take the voluntary pilgrimage that
|
||
|
swells the wealth of the Holy Therns and adds to the numbers
|
||
|
of their slaves.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Thus the therns are used as the principal means for collecting
|
||
|
the wealth and labour that the First Born wrest from them as
|
||
|
they need it. Occasionally the First Born themselves make
|
||
|
raids upon the outer world. It is then that they capture
|
||
|
many females of the royal houses of the red men, and take
|
||
|
the newest in battleships and the trained artisans who build
|
||
|
them, that they may copy what they cannot create.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We are a non-productive race, priding ourselves upon
|
||
|
our non-productiveness. It is criminal for a First Born to
|
||
|
labour or invent. That is the work of the lower orders, who
|
||
|
live merely that the First Born may enjoy long lives of luxury
|
||
|
and idleness. With us fighting is all that counts; were it
|
||
|
not for that there would be more of the First Born than all
|
||
|
the creatures of Barsoom could support, for in so far as I
|
||
|
know none of us ever dies a natural death. Our females
|
||
|
would live for ever but for the fact that we tire of them
|
||
|
and remove them to make place for others. Issus alone of all
|
||
|
is protected against death. She has lived for countless ages."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Would not the other Barsoomians live for ever but for the doctrine
|
||
|
of the voluntary pilgrimage which drags them to the bosom of Iss
|
||
|
at or before their thousandth year?" I asked him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I feel now that there is no doubt but that they are precisely
|
||
|
the same species of creature as the First Born, and I hope that
|
||
|
I shall live to fight for them in atonement of the sins I have
|
||
|
committed against them through the ignorance born of generations
|
||
|
of false teaching."
|
||
|
|
||
|
As he ceased speaking a weird call rang out across the waters of Omean.
|
||
|
I had heard it at the same time the previous evening and knew that
|
||
|
it marked the ending of the day, when the men of Omean spread their
|
||
|
silks upon the deck of battleship and cruiser and fall into the
|
||
|
dreamless sleep of Mars.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Our guard entered to inspect us for the last time before the
|
||
|
new day broke upon the world above. His duty was soon
|
||
|
performed and the heavy door of our prison closed behind him
|
||
|
--we were alone for the night.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I gave him time to return to his quarters, as Xodar said
|
||
|
he probably would do, then I sprang to the grated window
|
||
|
and surveyed the nearby waters. At a little distance from the
|
||
|
island, a quarter of a mile perhaps, lay a monster battleship,
|
||
|
while between her and the shore were a number of smaller
|
||
|
cruisers and one-man scouts. Upon the battleship alone
|
||
|
was there a watch. I could see him plainly in the upper
|
||
|
works of the ship, and as I watched I saw him spread
|
||
|
his sleeping silks upon the tiny platform in which he was
|
||
|
stationed. Soon he threw himself at full length upon his
|
||
|
couch. The discipline on Omean was lax indeed. But it is not
|
||
|
to be wondered at since no enemy guessed the existence upon
|
||
|
Barsoom of such a fleet, or even of the First Born, or the
|
||
|
Sea of Omean. Why indeed should they maintain a watch?
|
||
|
|
||
|
Presently I dropped to the floor again and talked with
|
||
|
Xodar, describing the various craft I had seen.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There is one there," he said, "my personal property,
|
||
|
built to carry five men, that is the swiftest of the swift.
|
||
|
If we can board her we can at least make a memorable run
|
||
|
for liberty," and then he went on to describe to me the
|
||
|
equipment of the boat; her engines, and all that went
|
||
|
to make her the flier that she was.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In his explanation I recognized a trick of gearing that
|
||
|
Kantos Kan had taught me that time we sailed under false
|
||
|
names in the navy of Zodanga beneath Sab Than, the Prince.
|
||
|
And I knew then that the First Born had stolen it from the
|
||
|
ships of Helium, for only they are thus geared. And I knew
|
||
|
too that Xodar spoke the truth when he lauded the speed of
|
||
|
his little craft, for nothing that cleaves the thin air
|
||
|
of Mars can approximate the speed of the ships of Helium.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We decided to wait for an hour at least until all the stragglers
|
||
|
had sought their silks. In the meantime I was to fetch the red
|
||
|
youth to our cell so that we would be in readiness to make our
|
||
|
rash break for freedom together.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I sprang to the top of our partition wall and pulled myself
|
||
|
up on to it. There I found a flat surface about a foot in
|
||
|
width and along this I walked until I came to the cell in
|
||
|
which I saw the boy sitting upon his bench. He had been
|
||
|
leaning back against the wall looking up at the glowing dome
|
||
|
above Omean, and when he spied me balancing upon the
|
||
|
partition wall above him his eyes opened wide in astonishment.
|
||
|
Then a wide grin of appreciative understanding spread across
|
||
|
his countenance.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I stooped to drop to the floor beside him he motioned
|
||
|
me to wait, and coming close below me whispered: "Catch
|
||
|
my hand; I can almost leap to the top of that wall myself.
|
||
|
I have tried it many times, and each day I come a little
|
||
|
closer. Some day I should have been able to make it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I lay upon my belly across the wall and reached my hand
|
||
|
far down toward him. With a little run from the centre of
|
||
|
the cell he sprang up until I grasped his outstretched hand,
|
||
|
and thus I pulled him to the wall's top beside me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are the first jumper I ever saw among the red men
|
||
|
of Barsoom," I said.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He smiled. "It is not strange. I will tell you why when
|
||
|
we have more time."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Together we returned to the cell in which Xodar sat;
|
||
|
descending to talk with him until the hour had passed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There we made our plans for the immediate future, binding
|
||
|
ourselves by a solemn oath to fight to the death for one
|
||
|
another against whatsoever enemies should confront us, for
|
||
|
we knew that even should we succeed in escaping the First
|
||
|
Born we might still have a whole world against us--the
|
||
|
power of religious superstition is mighty.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was agreed that I should navigate the craft after we
|
||
|
had reached her, and that if we made the outer world in
|
||
|
safety we should attempt to reach Helium without a stop.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why Helium?" asked the red youth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am a prince of Helium," I replied.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He gave me a peculiar look, but said nothing further on
|
||
|
the subject. I wondered at the time what the significance of
|
||
|
his expression might be, but in the press of other matters it
|
||
|
soon left my mind, nor did I have occasion to think of it
|
||
|
again until later.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come," I said at length, "now is as good a time as any.
|
||
|
Let us go."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Another moment found me at the top of the partition wall
|
||
|
again with the boy beside me. Unbuckling my harness I
|
||
|
snapped it together with a single long strap which I lowered
|
||
|
to the waiting Xodar below. He grasped the end and was soon
|
||
|
sitting beside us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How simple," he laughed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The balance should be even simpler," I replied. Then I
|
||
|
raised myself to the top of the outer wall of the prison, just
|
||
|
so that I could peer over and locate the passing sentry. For a
|
||
|
matter of five minutes I waited and then he came in sight on
|
||
|
his slow and snail-like beat about the structure.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I watched him until he had made the turn at the end of
|
||
|
the building which carried him out of sight of the side of
|
||
|
the prison that was to witness our dash for freedom. The
|
||
|
moment his form disappeared I grasped Xodar and drew him
|
||
|
to the top of the wall. Placing one end of my harness strap
|
||
|
in his hands I lowered him quickly to the ground below.
|
||
|
Then the boy grasped the strap and slid down to Xodar's side.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In accordance with our arrangement they did not wait for me,
|
||
|
but walked slowly toward the water, a matter of a hundred yards,
|
||
|
directly past the guard-house filled with sleeping soldiers.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They had taken scarce a dozen steps when I too dropped
|
||
|
to the ground and followed them leisurely toward the shore.
|
||
|
As I passed the guard-house the thought of all the good
|
||
|
blades lying there gave me pause, for if ever men were to
|
||
|
have need of swords it was my companions and I on the
|
||
|
perilous trip upon which we were about to embark.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I glanced toward Xodar and the youth and saw that they
|
||
|
had slipped over the edge of the dock into the water. In
|
||
|
accordance with our plan they were to remain there clinging
|
||
|
to the metal rings which studded the concrete-like substance
|
||
|
of the dock at the water's level, with only their mouths and
|
||
|
noses above the surface of the sea, until I should join them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The lure of the swords within the guard-house was strong
|
||
|
upon me, and I hesitated a moment, half inclined to risk the
|
||
|
attempt to take the few we needed. That he who hesitates
|
||
|
is lost proved itself a true aphorism in this instance,
|
||
|
for another moment saw me creeping stealthily toward the
|
||
|
door of the guard-house.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Gently I pressed it open a crack; enough to discover a
|
||
|
dozen blacks stretched upon their silks in profound slumber.
|
||
|
At the far side of the room a rack held the swords and
|
||
|
firearms of the men. Warily I pushed the door a trifle wider
|
||
|
to admit my body. A hinge gave out a resentful groan.
|
||
|
One of the men stirred, and my heart stood still. I cursed myself
|
||
|
for a fool to have thus jeopardized our chances for escape;
|
||
|
but there was nothing for it now but to see the adventure through.
|
||
|
|
||
|
With a spring as swift and as noiseless as a tiger's I lit
|
||
|
beside the guardsman who had moved. My hands hovered
|
||
|
about his throat awaiting the moment that his eyes should
|
||
|
open. For what seemed an eternity to my overwrought
|
||
|
nerves I remained poised thus. Then the fellow turned again
|
||
|
upon his side and resumed the even respiration of deep slumber.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Carefully I picked my way between and over the soldiers
|
||
|
until I had gained the rack at the far side of the room. Here
|
||
|
I turned to survey the sleeping men. All were quiet. Their
|
||
|
regular breathing rose and fell in a soothing rhythm that
|
||
|
seemed to me the sweetest music I ever had heard.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Gingerly I drew a long-sword from the rack. The scraping of the
|
||
|
scabbard against its holder as I withdrew it sounded like the
|
||
|
filing of cast iron with a great rasp, and I looked to see
|
||
|
the room immediately filled with alarmed and attacking guardsmen.
|
||
|
But none stirred.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The second sword I withdrew noiselessly, but the third
|
||
|
clanked in its scabbard with a frightful din. I knew that it
|
||
|
must awaken some of the men at least, and was on the point
|
||
|
of forestalling their attack by a rapid charge for the doorway,
|
||
|
when again, to my intense surprise, not a black moved.
|
||
|
Either they were wondrous heavy sleepers or else the noises
|
||
|
that I made were really much less than they seemed to me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was about to leave the rack when my attention was attracted
|
||
|
by the revolvers. I knew that I could not carry more than one
|
||
|
away with me, for I was already too heavily laden to move quietly
|
||
|
with any degree of safety or speed. As I took one of them from its
|
||
|
pin my eye fell for the first time on an open window beside the rack.
|
||
|
Ah, here was a splendid means of escape, for it let directly upon
|
||
|
the dock, not twenty feet from the water's edge.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And as I congratulated myself, I heard the door opposite
|
||
|
me open, and there looking me full in the face stood the
|
||
|
officer of the guard. He evidently took in the situation at a
|
||
|
glance and appreciated the gravity of it as quickly as I, for
|
||
|
our revolvers came up simultaneously and the sounds of the
|
||
|
two reports were as one as we touched the buttons on the
|
||
|
grips that exploded the cartridges.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I felt the wind of his bullet as it whizzed past my ear,
|
||
|
and at the same instant I saw him crumple to the ground.
|
||
|
Where I hit him I do not know, nor if I killed him, for scarce
|
||
|
had he started to collapse when I was through the window
|
||
|
at my rear. In another second the waters of Omean closed
|
||
|
above my head, and the three of us were making for the little
|
||
|
flier a hundred yards away.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Xodar was burdened with the boy, and I with the three long-swords.
|
||
|
The revolver I had dropped, so that while we were both strong
|
||
|
swimmers it seemed to me that we moved at a snail's pace
|
||
|
through the water. I was swimming entirely beneath the surface,
|
||
|
but Xodar was compelled to rise often to let the youth breathe,
|
||
|
so it was a wonder that we were not discovered long before we were.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In fact we reached the boat's side and were all aboard
|
||
|
before the watch upon the battleship, aroused by the shots,
|
||
|
detected us. Then an alarm gun bellowed from a ship's
|
||
|
bow, its deep boom reverberating in deafening tones beneath
|
||
|
the rocky dome of Omean.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Instantly the sleeping thousands were awake. The decks of
|
||
|
a thousand monster craft teemed with fighting-men, for an
|
||
|
alarm on Omean was a thing of rare occurrence.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We cast away before the sound of the first gun had died,
|
||
|
and another second saw us rising swiftly from the surface
|
||
|
of the sea. I lay at full length along the deck with the levers
|
||
|
and buttons of control before me. Xodar and the boy were
|
||
|
stretched directly behind me, prone also that we might offer
|
||
|
as little resistance to the air as possible.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Rise high," whispered Xodar. "They dare not fire their
|
||
|
heavy guns toward the dome--the fragments of the shells
|
||
|
would drop back among their own craft. If we are high
|
||
|
enough our keel plates will protect us from rifle fire."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I did as he bade. Below us we could see the men leaping
|
||
|
into the water by hundreds, and striking out for the small
|
||
|
cruisers and one-man fliers that lay moored about the big
|
||
|
ships. The larger craft were getting under way, following us
|
||
|
rapidly, but not rising from the water.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A little to your right," cried Xodar, for there are no points
|
||
|
of compass upon Omean where every direction is due north.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The pandemonium that had broken out below us was deafening.
|
||
|
Rifles cracked, officers shouted orders, men yelled directions
|
||
|
to one another from the water and from the decks of myriad boats,
|
||
|
while through all ran the purr of countless propellers cutting
|
||
|
water and air.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had not dared pull my speed lever to the highest for fear of
|
||
|
overrunning the mouth of the shaft that passed from Omean's dome
|
||
|
to the world above, but even so we were hitting a clip that I doubt
|
||
|
has ever been equalled on the windless sea.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The smaller fliers were commencing to rise toward us
|
||
|
when Xodar shouted: "The shaft! The shaft! Dead ahead,"
|
||
|
and I saw the opening, black and yawning in the glowing
|
||
|
dome of this underworld.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A ten-man cruiser was rising directly in front to cut off
|
||
|
our escape. It was the only vessel that stood in our way, but at
|
||
|
the rate that it was traveling it would come between us and
|
||
|
the shaft in plenty of time to thwart our plans.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was rising at an angle of about forty-five degrees dead
|
||
|
ahead of us, with the evident intention of combing us with
|
||
|
grappling hooks from above as it skimmed low over our deck.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was but one forlorn hope for us, and I took it.
|
||
|
It was useless to try to pass over her, for that would
|
||
|
have allowed her to force us against the rocky dome above,
|
||
|
and we were already too near that as it was. To have attempted
|
||
|
to dive below her would have put us entirely at her mercy,
|
||
|
and precisely where she wanted us. On either side a hundred
|
||
|
other menacing craft were hastening toward us. The alternative
|
||
|
was filled with risk--in fact it was all risk, with but a
|
||
|
slender chance of success.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As we neared the cruiser I rose as though to pass above
|
||
|
her, so that she would do just what she did do, rise at a
|
||
|
steeper angle to force me still higher. Then as we were
|
||
|
almost upon her I yelled to my companions to hold tight, and
|
||
|
throwing the little vessel into her highest speed I deflected
|
||
|
her bows at the same instant until we were running horizontally
|
||
|
and at terrific velocity straight for the cruiser's keel.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Her commander may have seen my intentions then, but it
|
||
|
was too late. Almost at the instant of impact I turned my
|
||
|
bows upward, and then with a shattering jolt we were in
|
||
|
collision. What I had hoped for happened. The cruiser,
|
||
|
already tilted at a perilous angle, was carried completely over
|
||
|
backward by the impact of my smaller vessel. Her crew fell
|
||
|
twisting and screaming through the air to the water far below,
|
||
|
while the cruiser, her propellers still madly churning, dived
|
||
|
swiftly headforemost after them to the bottom of the Sea of Omean.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The collision crushed our steel bows, and notwithstanding
|
||
|
every effort on our part came near to hurling us from the
|
||
|
deck. As it was we landed in a wildly clutching heap at the
|
||
|
very extremity of the flier, where Xodar and I succeeded in
|
||
|
grasping the hand-rail, but the boy would have plunged
|
||
|
overboard had I not fortunately grasped his ankle as he
|
||
|
was already partially over.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Unguided, our vessel careened wildly in its mad flight,
|
||
|
rising ever nearer the rocks above. It took but an instant,
|
||
|
however, for me to regain the levers, and with the roof barely
|
||
|
fifty feet above I turned her nose once more into the horizontal
|
||
|
plane and headed her again for the black mouth of the shaft.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The collision had retarded our progress and now a hundred
|
||
|
swift scouts were close upon us. Xodar had told me
|
||
|
that ascending the shaft by virtue of our repulsive rays alone
|
||
|
would give our enemies their best chance to overtake us,
|
||
|
since our propellers would be idle and in rising we would be
|
||
|
outclassed by many of our pursuers. The swifter craft are
|
||
|
seldom equipped with large buoyancy tanks, since the added
|
||
|
bulk of them tends to reduce a vessel's speed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As many boats were now quite close to us it was inevitable
|
||
|
that we would be quickly overhauled in the shaft, and captured
|
||
|
or killed in short order.
|
||
|
|
||
|
To me there always seems a way to gain the opposite
|
||
|
side of an obstacle. If one cannot pass over it, or below it,
|
||
|
or around it, why then there is but a single alternative left,
|
||
|
and that is to pass through it. I could not get around the
|
||
|
fact that many of these other boats could rise faster than
|
||
|
ours by the fact of their greater buoyancy, but I was none
|
||
|
the less determined to reach the outer world far in advance
|
||
|
of them or die a death of my own choosing in event of failure.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Reverse?" screamed Xodar, behind me. "For the love of
|
||
|
your first ancestor, reverse. We are at the shaft."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hold tight!" I screamed in reply. "Grasp the boy and
|
||
|
hold tight--we are going straight up the shaft."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The words were scarce out of my mouth as we swept beneath
|
||
|
the pitch-black opening. I threw the bow hard up,
|
||
|
dragged the speed lever to its last notch, and clutching a
|
||
|
stanchion with one hand and the steering-wheel with the other
|
||
|
hung on like grim death and consigned my soul to its author.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I heard a little exclamation of surprise from Xodar, followed
|
||
|
by a grim laugh. The boy laughed too and said something which
|
||
|
I could not catch for the whistling of the wind of our awful speed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I looked above my head, hoping to catch the gleam of stars by
|
||
|
which I could direct our course and hold the hurtling thing
|
||
|
that bore us true to the centre of the shaft. To have
|
||
|
touched the side at the speed we were making would doubtless
|
||
|
have resulted in instant death for us all. But not a star
|
||
|
showed above--only utter and impenetrable darkness.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then I glanced below me, and there I saw a rapidly
|
||
|
diminishing circle of light--the mouth of the opening above
|
||
|
the phosphorescent radiance of Omean. By this I steered,
|
||
|
endeavouring to keep the circle of light below me ever perfect.
|
||
|
At best it was but a slender cord that held us from destruction,
|
||
|
and I think that I steered that night more by intuition and blind
|
||
|
faith than by skill or reason.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We were not long in the shaft, and possibly the very fact
|
||
|
of our enormous speed saved us, for evidently we started in
|
||
|
the right direction and so quickly were we out again that
|
||
|
we had no time to alter our course. Omean lies perhaps two
|
||
|
miles below the surface crust of Mars. Our speed must have
|
||
|
approximated two hundred miles an hour, for Martian fliers are
|
||
|
swift, so that at most we were in the shaft not over forty seconds.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We must have been out of it for some seconds before I
|
||
|
realised that we had accomplished the impossible. Black
|
||
|
darkness enshrouded all about us. There were neither moons
|
||
|
nor stars. Never before had I seen such a thing upon Mars,
|
||
|
and for the moment I was nonplussed. Then the explanation
|
||
|
came to me. It was summer at the south pole. The ice cap
|
||
|
was melting and those meteoric phenomena, clouds, unknown
|
||
|
upon the greater part of Barsoom, were shutting out the light
|
||
|
of heaven from this portion of the planet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Fortunate indeed it was for us, nor did it take me long to
|
||
|
grasp the opportunity for escape which this happy condition
|
||
|
offered us. Keeping the boat's nose at a stiff angle I raced her
|
||
|
for the impenetrable curtain which Nature had hung above this dying
|
||
|
world to shut us out from the sight of our pursuing enemies.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We plunged through the cold camp fog without diminishing
|
||
|
our speed, and in a moment emerged into the glorious
|
||
|
light of the two moons and the million stars. I dropped into
|
||
|
a horizontal course and headed due north. Our enemies were
|
||
|
a good half-hour behind us with no conception of our direction.
|
||
|
We had performed the miraculous and come through a thousand
|
||
|
dangers unscathed--we had escaped from the land of the First Born.
|
||
|
No other prisoners in all the ages of Barsoom had done this thing,
|
||
|
and now as I looked back upon it it did not seem to have been so
|
||
|
difficult after all.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I said as much to Xodar, over my shoulder.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is very wonderful, nevertheless," he replied.
|
||
|
"No one else could have accomplished it but John Carter."
|
||
|
|
||
|
At the sound of that name the boy jumped to his feet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"John Carter!" he cried. "John Carter! Why, man, John Carter,
|
||
|
Prince of Helium, has been dead for years. I am his son."
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XIV
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE EYES IN THE DARK
|
||
|
|
||
|
My son! I could not believe my ears. Slowly I rose and faced
|
||
|
the handsome youth. Now that I looked at him closely I
|
||
|
commenced to see why his face and personality had attracted
|
||
|
me so strongly. There was much of his mother's incomparable
|
||
|
beauty in his clear-cut features, but it was strongly
|
||
|
masculine beauty, and his grey eyes and the expression of
|
||
|
them were mine.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The boy stood facing me, half hope and half uncertainty
|
||
|
in his look.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Tell me of your mother," I said. "Tell me all you can of
|
||
|
the years that I have been robbed by a relentless fate of her
|
||
|
dear companionship."
|
||
|
|
||
|
With a cry of pleasure he sprang toward me and threw his
|
||
|
arms about my neck, and for a brief moment as I held my
|
||
|
boy close to me the tears welled to my eyes and I was
|
||
|
like to have choked after the manner of some maudlin
|
||
|
fool--but I do not regret it, nor am I ashamed. A long life
|
||
|
has taught me that a man may seem weak where women
|
||
|
and children are concerned and yet be anything but a
|
||
|
weakling in the sterner avenues of life.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Your stature, your manner, the terrible ferocity of
|
||
|
your swordsmanship," said the boy, "are as my mother has
|
||
|
described them to me a thousand times--but even with such
|
||
|
evidence I could scarce credit the truth of what seemed
|
||
|
so improbable to me, however much I desired it to be true.
|
||
|
Do you know what thing it was that convinced me more than
|
||
|
all the others?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What, my boy?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Your first words to me--they were of my mother. None
|
||
|
else but the man who loved her as she has told me my father
|
||
|
did would have thought first of her."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"For long years, my son, I can scarce recall a moment
|
||
|
that the radiant vision of your mother's face has not been
|
||
|
ever before me. Tell me of her."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Those who have known her longest say that she has not
|
||
|
changed, unless it be to grow more beautiful--were that
|
||
|
possible. Only, when she thinks I am not about to see her,
|
||
|
her face grows very sad, and, oh, so wistful. She thinks ever
|
||
|
of you, my father, and all Helium mourns with her and for
|
||
|
her. Her grandfather's people love her. They loved you also,
|
||
|
and fairly worship your memory as the saviour of Barsoom.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Each year that brings its anniversary of the day that saw
|
||
|
you racing across a near dead world to unlock the secret of
|
||
|
that awful portal behind which lay the mighty power of life
|
||
|
for countless millions a great festival is held in your honour;
|
||
|
but there are tears mingled with the thanksgiving--tears of
|
||
|
real regret that the author of the happiness is not with them
|
||
|
to share the joy of living he died to give them. Upon all
|
||
|
Barsoom there is no greater name than John Carter."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And by what name has your mother called you, my boy?"
|
||
|
I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The people of Helium asked that I be named with my
|
||
|
father's name, but my mother said no, that you and she had
|
||
|
chosen a name for me together, and that your wish must be
|
||
|
honoured before all others, so the name that she called me
|
||
|
is the one that you desired, a combination of hers and
|
||
|
yours--Carthoris."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Xodar had been at the wheel as I talked with my son,
|
||
|
and now he called me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She is dropping badly by the head, John Carter," he said.
|
||
|
"So long as we were rising at a stiff angle it was not
|
||
|
noticeable, but now that I am trying to keep a horizontal
|
||
|
course it is different. The wound in her bow has opened
|
||
|
one of her forward ray tanks."
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was true, and after I had examined the damage I found
|
||
|
it a much graver matter than I had anticipated. Not only was
|
||
|
the forced angle at which we were compelled to maintain
|
||
|
the bow in order to keep a horizontal course greatly impeding
|
||
|
our speed, but at the rate that we were losing our repulsive
|
||
|
rays from the forward tanks it was but a question of an hour
|
||
|
or more when we would be floating stern up and helpless.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We had slightly reduced our speed with the dawning of a
|
||
|
sense of security, but now I took the helm once more and
|
||
|
pulled the noble little engine wide open, so that again we
|
||
|
raced north at terrific velocity. In the meantime Carthoris
|
||
|
and Xodar with tools in hand were puttering with the great
|
||
|
rent in the bow in a hopeless endeavour to stem the tide
|
||
|
of escaping rays.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was still dark when we passed the northern boundary of
|
||
|
the ice cap and the area of clouds. Below us lay a typical
|
||
|
Martian landscape. Rolling ochre sea bottom of long dead
|
||
|
seas, low surrounding hills, with here and there the grim and
|
||
|
silent cities of the dead past; great piles of mighty
|
||
|
architecture tenanted only by age-old memories of a
|
||
|
once powerful race, and by the great white apes of Barsoom.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was becoming more and more difficult to maintain our
|
||
|
little vessel in a horizontal position. Lower and lower sagged
|
||
|
the bow until it became necessary to stop the engine to prevent
|
||
|
our flight terminating in a swift dive to the ground.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As the sun rose and the light of a new day swept away
|
||
|
the darkness of night our craft gave a final spasmodic plunge,
|
||
|
turned half upon her side, and then with deck tilting
|
||
|
at a sickening angle swung in a slow circle, her bow dropping
|
||
|
further below her stern each moment.
|
||
|
|
||
|
To hand-rail and stanchion we clung, and finally as we
|
||
|
saw the end approaching, snapped the buckles of our harness
|
||
|
to the rings at her sides. In another moment the deck
|
||
|
reared at an angle of ninety degrees and we hung in our
|
||
|
leather with feet dangling a thousand yards above the ground.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was swinging quite close to the controlling devices, so I
|
||
|
reached out to the lever that directed the rays of repulsion.
|
||
|
The boat responded to the touch, and very gently we began
|
||
|
to sink toward the ground.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was fully half an hour before we touched. Directly north
|
||
|
of us rose a rather lofty range of hills, toward which we
|
||
|
decided to make our way, since they afforded greater
|
||
|
opportunity for concealment from the pursuers we were
|
||
|
confident might stumble in this direction.
|
||
|
|
||
|
An hour later found us in the time-rounded gullies of the
|
||
|
hills, amid the beautiful flowering plants that abound in the
|
||
|
arid waste places of Barsoom. There we found numbers of
|
||
|
huge milk-giving shrubs--that strange plant which serves in
|
||
|
great part as food and drink for the wild hordes of green men.
|
||
|
It was indeed a boon to us, for we all were nearly famished.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Beneath a cluster of these which afforded perfect concealment
|
||
|
from wandering air scouts, we lay down to sleep--for me the
|
||
|
first time in many hours. This was the beginning of my
|
||
|
fifth day upon Barsoom since I had found myself suddenly
|
||
|
translated from my cottage on the Hudson to Dor, the
|
||
|
valley beautiful, the valley hideous. In all this time I had
|
||
|
slept but twice, though once the clock around within the
|
||
|
storehouse of the therns.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was mid-afternoon when I was awakened by some one
|
||
|
seizing my hand and covering it with kisses. With a start I
|
||
|
opened my eyes to look into the beautiful face of Thuvia.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My Prince! My Prince!" she cried, in an ecstasy of happiness.
|
||
|
"'Tis you whom I had mourned as dead. My ancestors
|
||
|
have been good to me; I have not lived in vain."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The girl's voice awoke Xodar and Carthoris. The boy
|
||
|
gazed upon the woman in surprise, but she did not seem to
|
||
|
realize the presence of another than I. She would have
|
||
|
thrown her arms about my neck and smothered me with
|
||
|
caresses, had I not gently but firmly disengaged myself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come, come, Thuvia," I said soothingly; "you are overwrought
|
||
|
by the danger and hardships you have passed through.
|
||
|
You forget yourself, as you forget that I am the husband
|
||
|
of the Princess of Helium."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I forget nothing, my Prince," she replied. "You have
|
||
|
spoken no word of love to me, nor do I expect that you
|
||
|
ever shall; but nothing can prevent me loving you. I would
|
||
|
not take the place of Dejah Thoris. My greatest ambition is to
|
||
|
serve you, my Prince, for ever as your slave. No greater boon
|
||
|
could I ask, no greater honour could I crave, no greater
|
||
|
happiness could I hope."
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I have before said, I am no ladies' man, and I must admit
|
||
|
that I seldom have felt so uncomfortable and embarrassed
|
||
|
as I did that moment. While I was quite familiar with the
|
||
|
Martian custom which allows female slaves to Martian men,
|
||
|
whose high and chivalrous honour is always ample protection
|
||
|
for every woman in his household, yet I had never myself
|
||
|
chosen other than men as my body servants.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And I ever return to Helium, Thuvia," I said, "you shall
|
||
|
go with me, but as an honoured equal, and not as a slave.
|
||
|
There you shall find plenty of handsome young nobles who
|
||
|
would face Issus herself to win a smile from you, and we shall
|
||
|
have you married in short order to one of the best of
|
||
|
them. Forget your foolish gratitude-begotten infatuation,
|
||
|
which your innocence has mistaken for love. I like your
|
||
|
friendship better, Thuvia."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are my master; it shall be as you say," she replied
|
||
|
simply, but there was a note of sadness in her voice.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How came you here, Thuvia?" I asked. "And where is Tars Tarkas?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The great Thark, I fear, is dead," she replied sadly.
|
||
|
"He was a mighty fighter, but a multitude of green warriors
|
||
|
of another horde than his overwhelmed him. The last that I
|
||
|
saw of him they were bearing him, wounded and bleeding,
|
||
|
to the deserted city from which they had sallied to attack us."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are not sure that he is dead, then?" I asked.
|
||
|
"And where is this city of which you speak?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is just beyond this range of hills. The vessel in which
|
||
|
you so nobly resigned a place that we might find escape defied
|
||
|
our small skill in navigation, with the result that we drifted
|
||
|
aimlessly about for two days. Then we decided to abandon
|
||
|
the craft and attempt to make our way on foot to the nearest
|
||
|
waterway. Yesterday we crossed these hills and came upon
|
||
|
the dead city beyond. We had passed within its streets and
|
||
|
were walking toward the central portion, when at an intersecting
|
||
|
avenue we saw a body of green warriors approaching.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Tars Tarkas was in advance, and they saw him, but me they did
|
||
|
not see. The Thark sprang back to my side and forced me into
|
||
|
an adjacent doorway, where he told me to remain in hiding
|
||
|
until I could escape, making my way to Helium if possible.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"'There will be no escape for me now,' he said,
|
||
|
'for these be the Warhoon of the South. When they
|
||
|
have seen my metal it will be to the death.'
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then he stepped out to meet them. Ah, my Prince, such
|
||
|
fighting! For an hour they swarmed about him, until the
|
||
|
Warhoon dead formed a hill where he had stood; but at last
|
||
|
they overwhelmed him, those behind pushing the foremost upon
|
||
|
him until there remained no space to swing his great sword.
|
||
|
Then he stumbled and went down and they rolled over him like
|
||
|
a huge wave. When they carried him away toward the heart of
|
||
|
the city, he was dead, I think, for I did not see him move."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Before we go farther we must be sure," I said. "I cannot
|
||
|
leave Tars Tarkas alive among the Warhoons. To-night I shall
|
||
|
enter the city and make sure."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And I shall go with you," spoke Carthoris.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And I," said Xodar.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Neither one of you shall go," I replied. "It is work that
|
||
|
requires stealth and strategy, not force. One man alone may
|
||
|
succeed where more would invite disaster. I shall go alone.
|
||
|
If I need your help, I will return for you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
They did not like it, but both were good soldiers, and it
|
||
|
had been agreed that I should command. The sun already
|
||
|
was low, so that I did not have long to wait before the
|
||
|
sudden darkness of Barsoom engulfed us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
With a parting word of instructions to Carthoris and Xodar,
|
||
|
in case I should not return, I bade them all farewell and
|
||
|
set forth at a rapid dogtrot toward the city.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I emerged from the hills the nearer moon was winging
|
||
|
its wild flight through the heavens, its bright beams turning
|
||
|
to burnished silver the barbaric splendour of the ancient
|
||
|
metropolis. The city had been built upon the gently rolling
|
||
|
foothills that in the dim and distant past had sloped down
|
||
|
to meet the sea. It was due to this fact that I had no
|
||
|
difficulty in entering the streets unobserved.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The green hordes that use these deserted cities seldom
|
||
|
occupy more than a few squares about the central plaza,
|
||
|
and as they come and go always across the dead sea bottoms
|
||
|
that the cities face, it is usually a matter of comparative
|
||
|
ease to enter from the hillside.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Once within the streets, I kept close in the dense shadows
|
||
|
of the walls. At intersections I halted a moment to make sure
|
||
|
that none was in sight before I sprang quickly to the shadows
|
||
|
of the opposite side. Thus I made the journey to the vicinity
|
||
|
of the plaza without detection. As I approached the purlieus
|
||
|
of the inhabited portion of the city I was made aware of the
|
||
|
proximity of the warriors' quarters by the squealing and
|
||
|
grunting of the thoats and zitidars corralled within the hollow
|
||
|
courtyards formed by the buildings surrounding each square.
|
||
|
|
||
|
These old familiar sounds that are so distinctive of green
|
||
|
Martian life sent a thrill of pleasure surging through me. It was
|
||
|
as one might feel on coming home after a long absence. It
|
||
|
was amid such sounds that I had first courted the incomparable
|
||
|
Dejah Thoris in the age-old marble halls of the dead city of Korad.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I stood in the shadows at the far corner of the first
|
||
|
square which housed members of the horde, I saw warriors
|
||
|
emerging from several of the buildings. They all went in
|
||
|
the same direction, toward a great building which stood
|
||
|
in the centre of the plaza. My knowledge of green Martian
|
||
|
customs convinced me that this was either the quarters of the
|
||
|
principal chieftain or contained the audience chamber wherein
|
||
|
the Jeddak met his jeds and lesser chieftains. In either event,
|
||
|
it was evident that something was afoot which might have a
|
||
|
bearing on the recent capture of Tars Tarkas.
|
||
|
|
||
|
To reach this building, which I now felt it imperative that
|
||
|
I do, I must needs traverse the entire length of one square
|
||
|
and cross a broad avenue and a portion of the plaza. From
|
||
|
the noises of the animals which came from every courtyard
|
||
|
about me, I knew that there were many people in the
|
||
|
surrounding buildings--probably several communities of
|
||
|
the great horde of the Warhoons of the South.
|
||
|
|
||
|
To pass undetected among all these people was in itself
|
||
|
a difficult task, but if I was to find and rescue the great
|
||
|
Thark I must expect even more formidable obstacles before
|
||
|
success could be mine. I had entered the city from the south
|
||
|
and now stood on the corner of the avenue through which
|
||
|
I had passed and the first intersecting avenue south of the
|
||
|
plaza. The buildings upon the south side of this square did
|
||
|
not appear to be inhabited, as I could see no lights, and so
|
||
|
I decided to gain the inner courtyard through one of them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Nothing occurred to interrupt my progress through the
|
||
|
deserted pile I chose, and I came into the inner court close
|
||
|
to the rear walls of the east buildings without detection.
|
||
|
Within the court a great herd of thoats and zitidars moved
|
||
|
restlessly about, cropping the moss-like ochre vegetation which
|
||
|
overgrows practically the entire uncultivated area of Mars.
|
||
|
What breeze there was came from the north-west, so there
|
||
|
was little danger that the beasts would scent me. Had they,
|
||
|
their squealing and grunting would have grown to such a
|
||
|
volume as to attract the attention of the warriors within
|
||
|
the buildings.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Close to the east wall, beneath the overhanging balconies
|
||
|
of the second floors, I crept in dense shadows the full length
|
||
|
of the courtyard, until I came to the buildings at the north
|
||
|
end. These were lighted for about three floors up, but above
|
||
|
the third floor all was dark.
|
||
|
|
||
|
To pass through the lighted rooms was, of course, out of
|
||
|
the question, since they swarmed with green Martian men
|
||
|
and women. My only path lay through the upper floors, and
|
||
|
to gain these it was necessary to scale the face of the wall.
|
||
|
The reaching of the balcony of the second floor was a matter
|
||
|
of easy accomplishment--an agile leap gave my hands a grasp
|
||
|
upon the stone hand-rail above. In another instant I had
|
||
|
drawn myself upon the balcony.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Here through the open windows I saw the green folk squatting
|
||
|
upon their sleeping silks and furs, grunting an occasional
|
||
|
monosyllable, which, in connection with their wondrous telepathic
|
||
|
powers, is ample for their conversational requirements.
|
||
|
As I drew closer to listen to their words a warrior
|
||
|
entered the room from the hall beyond.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come, Tan Gama," he cried, "we are to take the Thark before
|
||
|
Kab Kadja. Bring another with you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The warrior addressed arose and, beckoning to a fellow
|
||
|
squatting near, the three turned and left the apartment.
|
||
|
|
||
|
If I could but follow them the chance might come to free
|
||
|
Tars Tarkas at once. At least I would learn the location
|
||
|
of his prison.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At my right was a door leading from the balcony into the building.
|
||
|
It was at the end of an unlighted hall, and on the impulse of the
|
||
|
moment I stepped within. The hall was broad and led straight
|
||
|
through to the front of the building. On either side were the
|
||
|
doorways of the various apartments which lined it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had no more than entered the corridor than I saw the
|
||
|
three warriors at the other end--those whom I had just seen
|
||
|
leaving the apartment. Then a turn to the right took them
|
||
|
from my sight again. Quickly I hastened along the hallway
|
||
|
in pursuit. My gait was reckless, but I felt that Fate had been
|
||
|
kind indeed to throw such an opportunity within my grasp,
|
||
|
and I could not afford to allow it to elude me now.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At the far end of the corridor I found a spiral stairway
|
||
|
leading to the floors above and below. The three had evidently
|
||
|
left the floor by this avenue. That they had gone down and
|
||
|
not up I was sure from my knowledge of these ancient
|
||
|
buildings and the methods of the Warhoons.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I myself had once been a prisoner of the cruel hordes of
|
||
|
northern Warhoon, and the memory of the underground
|
||
|
dungeon in which I lay still is vivid in my memory. And so
|
||
|
I felt certain that Tars Tarkas lay in the dark pits beneath
|
||
|
some nearby building, and that in that direction I should find
|
||
|
the trail of the three warriors leading to his cell.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Nor was I wrong. At the bottom of the runway, or rather
|
||
|
at the landing on the floor below, I saw that the shaft
|
||
|
descended into the pits beneath, and as I glanced down the
|
||
|
flickering light of a torch revealed the presence of the
|
||
|
three I was trailing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Down they went toward the pits beneath the structure, and
|
||
|
at a safe distance behind I followed the flicker of their torch.
|
||
|
The way led through a maze of tortuous corridors, unlighted
|
||
|
save for the wavering light they carried. We had gone
|
||
|
perhaps a hundred yards when the party turned abruptly
|
||
|
through a doorway at their right. I hastened on as rapidly as
|
||
|
I dared through the darkness until I reached the point at
|
||
|
which they had left the corridor. There, through an open
|
||
|
door, I saw them removing the chains that secured the great
|
||
|
Thark, Tars Tarkas, to the wall.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Hustling him roughly between them, they came immediately
|
||
|
from the chamber, so quickly in fact that I was near to
|
||
|
being apprehended. But I managed to run along the corridor
|
||
|
in the direction I had been going in my pursuit of them
|
||
|
far enough to be without the radius of their meagre light
|
||
|
as they emerged from the cell.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had naturally assumed that they would return with
|
||
|
Tars Tarkas the same way that they had come, which would
|
||
|
have carried them away from me; but, to my chagrin, they
|
||
|
wheeled directly in my direction as they left the room. There
|
||
|
was nothing for me but to hasten on in advance and keep
|
||
|
out of the light of their torch. I dared not attempt to halt in
|
||
|
the darkness of any of the many intersecting corridors, for
|
||
|
I knew nothing of the direction they might take. Chance was
|
||
|
as likely as not to carry me into the very corridor they might
|
||
|
choose to enter.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The sensation of moving rapidly through these dark passages
|
||
|
was far from reassuring. I knew not at what moment I might
|
||
|
plunge headlong into some terrible pit or meet with some
|
||
|
of the ghoulish creatures that inhabit these lower worlds
|
||
|
beneath the dead cities of dying Mars. There filtered to me
|
||
|
a faint radiance from the torch of the men behind--just
|
||
|
enough to permit me to trace the direction of the winding
|
||
|
passageways directly before me, and so keep me from
|
||
|
dashing myself against the walls at the turns.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Presently I came to a place where five corridors diverged
|
||
|
from a common point. I had hastened along one of them for
|
||
|
some little distance when suddenly the faint light of the torch
|
||
|
disappeared from behind me. I paused to listen for sounds of
|
||
|
the party behind me, but the silence was as utter as the
|
||
|
silence of the tomb.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Quickly I realized that the warriors had taken one of the
|
||
|
other corridors with their prisoner, and so I hastened back with
|
||
|
a feeling of considerable relief to take up a much safer and
|
||
|
more desirable position behind them. It was much slower
|
||
|
work returning, however, than it had been coming, for now
|
||
|
the darkness was as utter as the silence.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was necessary to feel every foot of the way back with
|
||
|
my hand against the side wall, that I might not pass the spot
|
||
|
where the five roads radiated. After what seemed an eternity to
|
||
|
me, I reached the place and recognized it by groping across
|
||
|
the entrances to the several corridors until I had counted five
|
||
|
of them. In not one, however, showed the faintest sign of light.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I listened intently, but the naked feet of the green men sent
|
||
|
back no guiding echoes, though presently I thought I detected
|
||
|
the clank of side arms in the far distance of the middle corridor.
|
||
|
Up this, then, I hastened, searching for the light, and stopping
|
||
|
to listen occasionally for a repetition of the sound; but soon I
|
||
|
was forced to admit that I must have been following a blind lead,
|
||
|
as only darkness and silence rewarded my efforts.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Again I retraced my steps toward the parting of the ways,
|
||
|
when to my surprise I came upon the entrance to three
|
||
|
diverging corridors, any one of which I might have traversed
|
||
|
in my hasty dash after the false clue I had been following.
|
||
|
Here was a pretty fix, indeed! Once back at the point
|
||
|
where the five passageways met, I might wait with some
|
||
|
assurance for the return of the warriors with Tars Tarkas.
|
||
|
My knowledge of their customs lent colour to the belief that
|
||
|
he was but being escorted to the audience chamber to have
|
||
|
sentence passed upon him. I had not the slightest doubt but
|
||
|
that they would preserve so doughty a warrior as the great
|
||
|
Thark for the rare sport he would furnish at the Great Games.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But unless I could find my way back to that point the
|
||
|
chances were most excellent that I would wander for days
|
||
|
through the awful blackness, until, overcome by thirst and
|
||
|
hunger, I lay down to die, or-- What was that!
|
||
|
|
||
|
A faint shuffling sounded behind me, and as I cast a hasty
|
||
|
glance over my shoulder my blood froze in my veins for the
|
||
|
thing I saw there. It was not so much fear of the present
|
||
|
danger as it was the horrifying memories it recalled of that
|
||
|
time I near went mad over the corpse of the man I had killed
|
||
|
in the dungeons of the Warhoons, when blazing eyes came
|
||
|
out of the dark recesses and dragged the thing that had been
|
||
|
a man from my clutches and I heard it scraping over the stone
|
||
|
of my prison as they bore it away to their terrible feast.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And now in these black pits of the other Warhoons I looked
|
||
|
into those same fiery eyes, blazing at me through the
|
||
|
terrible darkness, revealing no sign of the beast behind them.
|
||
|
I think that the most fearsome attribute of these awesome
|
||
|
creatures is their silence and the fact that one never sees
|
||
|
them--nothing but those baleful eyes glaring unblinkingly out
|
||
|
of the dark void behind.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Grasping my long-sword tightly in my hand, I backed slowly
|
||
|
along the corridor away from the thing that watched me,
|
||
|
but ever as I retreated the eyes advanced, nor was there any
|
||
|
sound, not even the sound of breathing, except the occasional
|
||
|
shuffling sound as of the dragging of a dead limb, that had
|
||
|
first attracted my attention.
|
||
|
|
||
|
On and on I went, but I could not escape my sinister pursuer.
|
||
|
Suddenly I heard the shuffling noise at my right, and,
|
||
|
looking, saw another pair of eyes, evidently approaching from
|
||
|
an intersecting corridor. As I started to renew my slow
|
||
|
retreat I heard the noise repeated behind me, and then before
|
||
|
I could turn I heard it again at my left.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The things were all about me. They had me surrounded
|
||
|
at the intersection of two corridors. Retreat was cut off in
|
||
|
all directions, unless I chose to charge one of the beasts.
|
||
|
Even then I had no doubt but that the others would hurl
|
||
|
themselves upon my back. I could not even guess the size
|
||
|
or nature of the weird creatures. That they were of goodly
|
||
|
proportions I guessed from the fact that the eyes were on a
|
||
|
level with my own.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Why is it that darkness so magnifies our dangers? By day
|
||
|
I would have charged the great banth itself, had I thought
|
||
|
it necessary, but hemmed in by the darkness of these silent
|
||
|
pits I hesitated before a pair of eyes.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Soon I saw that the matter shortly would be taken entirely
|
||
|
from my hands, for the eyes at my right were moving slowly
|
||
|
nearer me, as were those at my left and those behind and
|
||
|
before me. Gradually they were closing in upon me--but
|
||
|
still that awful stealthy silence!
|
||
|
|
||
|
For what seemed hours the eyes approached gradually
|
||
|
closer and closer, until I felt that I should go mad for the
|
||
|
horror of it. I had been constantly turning this way and
|
||
|
that to prevent any sudden rush from behind, until I was
|
||
|
fairly worn out. At length I could endure it no longer, and,
|
||
|
taking a fresh grasp upon my long-sword, I turned suddenly
|
||
|
and charged down upon one of my tormentors.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I was almost upon it the thing retreated before me,
|
||
|
but a sound from behind caused me to wheel in time to see
|
||
|
three pairs of eyes rushing at me from the rear. With a cry
|
||
|
of rage I turned to meet the cowardly beasts, but as I advanced
|
||
|
they retreated as had their fellow. Another glance over
|
||
|
my shoulder discovered the first eyes sneaking on me again.
|
||
|
And again I charged, only to see the eyes retreat before me
|
||
|
and hear the muffled rush of the three at my back.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Thus we continued, the eyes always a little closer in the
|
||
|
end than they had been before, until I thought that I should
|
||
|
go mad with the terrible strain of the ordeal. That they were
|
||
|
waiting to spring upon my back seemed evident, and that it
|
||
|
would not be long before they succeeded was equally apparent,
|
||
|
for I could not endure the wear of this repeated charge and
|
||
|
countercharge indefinitely. In fact, I could feel myself weakening
|
||
|
from the mental and physical strain I had been undergoing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At that moment I caught another glimpse from the corner
|
||
|
of my eye of the single pair of eyes at my back making a
|
||
|
sudden rush upon me. I turned to meet the charge; there was
|
||
|
a quick rush of the three from the other direction; but I
|
||
|
determined to pursue the single pair until I should have at
|
||
|
least settled my account with one of the beasts and thus be
|
||
|
relieved of the strain of meeting attacks from both directions.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was no sound in the corridor, only that of my own
|
||
|
breathing, yet I knew that those three uncanny creatures
|
||
|
were almost upon me. The eyes in front were not retreating
|
||
|
so rapidly now; I was almost within sword reach of them. I
|
||
|
raised my sword arm to deal the blow that should free me,
|
||
|
and then I felt a heavy body upon my back. A cold, moist,
|
||
|
slimy something fastened itself upon my throat. I stumbled
|
||
|
and went down.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XV
|
||
|
|
||
|
FLIGHT AND PURSUIT
|
||
|
|
||
|
I could not have been unconscious more than a few seconds,
|
||
|
and yet I know that I was unconscious, for the next thing
|
||
|
I realized was that a growing radiance was illuminating
|
||
|
the corridor about me and the eyes were gone.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was unharmed except for a slight bruise upon my forehead
|
||
|
where it had struck the stone flagging as I fell.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I sprang to my feet to ascertain the cause of the light. It
|
||
|
came from a torch in the hand of one of a party of four green
|
||
|
warriors, who were coming rapidly down the corridor toward me.
|
||
|
They had not yet seen me, and so I lost no time in slipping
|
||
|
into the first intersecting corridor that I could find.
|
||
|
This time, however, I did not advance so far away from the
|
||
|
main corridor as on the other occasion that had resulted in
|
||
|
my losing Tars Tarkas and his guards.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The party came rapidly toward the opening of the passageway
|
||
|
in which I crouched against the wall. As they passed by
|
||
|
I breathed a sigh of relief. I had not been discovered, and,
|
||
|
best of all, the party was the same that I had followed into
|
||
|
the pits. It consisted of Tars Tarkas and his three guards.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I fell in behind them and soon we were at the cell in which
|
||
|
the great Thark had been chained. Two of the warriors remained
|
||
|
without while the man with the keys entered with the Thark
|
||
|
to fasten his irons upon him once more. The two outside
|
||
|
started to stroll slowly in the direction of the spiral
|
||
|
runway which led to the floors above, and in a moment were
|
||
|
lost to view beyond a turn in the corridor.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The torch had been stuck in a socket beside the door, so
|
||
|
that its rays illuminated both the corridor and the cell at the
|
||
|
same time. As I saw the two warriors disappear I approached the
|
||
|
entrance to the cell, with a well-defined plan already formulated.
|
||
|
|
||
|
While I disliked the thought of carrying out the thing that I
|
||
|
had decided upon, there seemed no alternative if Tars Tarkas
|
||
|
and I were to go back together to my little camp in the hills.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Keeping near the wall, I came quite close to the door to
|
||
|
Tars Tarkas' cell, and there I stood with my longsword above
|
||
|
my head, grasped with both hands, that I might bring it down
|
||
|
in one quick cut upon the skull of the jailer as he emerged.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I dislike to dwell upon what followed after I heard the
|
||
|
footsteps of the man as he approached the doorway. It is
|
||
|
enough that within another minute or two, Tars Tarkas,
|
||
|
wearing the metal of a Warhoon chief, was hurrying down
|
||
|
the corridor toward the spiral runway, bearing the Warhoon's
|
||
|
torch to light his way. A dozen paces behind him followed
|
||
|
John Carter, Prince of Helium.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The two companions of the man who lay now beside the
|
||
|
door of the cell that had been Tars Tarkas' had just started
|
||
|
to ascend the runway as the Thark came in view.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why so long, Tan Gama?" cried one of the men.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I had trouble with a lock," replied Tars Tarkas.
|
||
|
"And now I find that I have left my short-sword in
|
||
|
the Thark's cell. Go you on, I'll return and fetch it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"As you will, Tan Gama," replied he who had before spoken.
|
||
|
"We shall see you above directly."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes," replied Tars Tarkas, and turned as though to retrace
|
||
|
his steps to the cell, but he only waited until the two
|
||
|
had disappeared at the floor above. Then I joined him, we
|
||
|
extinguished the torch, and together we crept toward the
|
||
|
spiral incline that led to the upper floors of the building.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At the first floor we found that the hallway ran but halfway
|
||
|
through, necessitating the crossing of a rear room full of
|
||
|
green folk, ere we could reach the inner courtyard, so there
|
||
|
was but one thing left for us to do, and that was to gain the
|
||
|
second floor and the hallway through which I had traversed
|
||
|
the length of the building.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Cautiously we ascended. We could hear the sounds of
|
||
|
conversation coming from the room above, but the hall still
|
||
|
was unlighted, nor was any one in sight as we gained the top
|
||
|
of the runway. Together we threaded the long hall and reached
|
||
|
the balcony overlooking the courtyard, without being detected.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At our right was the window letting into the room in which I
|
||
|
had seen Tan Gama and the other warriors as they started to
|
||
|
Tars Tarkas' cell earlier in the evening. His companions had
|
||
|
returned here, and we now overheard a portion of their conversation.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What can be detaining Tan Gama?" asked one.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He certainly could not be all this time fetching his shortsword
|
||
|
from the Thark's cell," spoke another.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"His short-sword?" asked a woman. "What mean you?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Tan Gama left his short-sword in the Thark's cell," explained the
|
||
|
first speaker, "and left us at the runway, to return and get it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Tan Gama wore no short-sword this night," said the
|
||
|
woman. "It was broken in to-day's battle with the Thark,
|
||
|
and Tan Gama gave it to me to repair. See, I have it here,"
|
||
|
and as she spoke she drew Tan Gama's short-sword from
|
||
|
beneath her sleeping silks and furs.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The warriors sprang to their feet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There is something amiss here," cried one.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"'Tis even what I myself thought when Tan Gama left
|
||
|
us at the runway," said another. "Methought then that his
|
||
|
voice sounded strangely."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come! let us hasten to the pits."
|
||
|
|
||
|
We waited to hear no more. Slinging my harness into a
|
||
|
long single strap, I lowered Tars Tarkas to the courtyard
|
||
|
beneath, and an instant later dropped to his side.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We had spoken scarcely a dozen words since I had felled
|
||
|
Tan Gama at the cell door and seen in the torch's light the
|
||
|
expression of utter bewilderment upon the great Thark's face.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"By this time," he had said, "I should have learned to wonder
|
||
|
at nothing which John Carter accomplishes." That was all.
|
||
|
He did not need to tell me that he appreciated the friendship
|
||
|
which had prompted me to risk my life to rescue him, nor did
|
||
|
he need to say that he was glad to see me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This fierce green warrior had been the first to greet me
|
||
|
that day, now twenty years gone, which had witnessed my
|
||
|
first advent upon Mars. He had met me with levelled spear
|
||
|
and cruel hatred in his heart as he charged down upon me,
|
||
|
bending low at the side of his mighty thoat as I stood beside
|
||
|
the incubator of his horde upon the dead sea bottom beyond Korad.
|
||
|
And now among the inhabitants of two worlds I counted none a
|
||
|
better friend than Tars Tarkas, Jeddak of the Tharks.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As we reached the courtyard we stood in the shadows beneath
|
||
|
the balcony for a moment to discuss our plans.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There be five now in the party, Tars Tarkas," I said;
|
||
|
"Thuvia, Xodar, Carthoris, and ourselves. We shall need five
|
||
|
thoats to bear us."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Carthoris!" he cried. "Your son?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes. I found him in the prison of Shador, on the Sea of
|
||
|
Omean, in the land of the First Born."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I know not any of these places, John Carter. Be they
|
||
|
upon Barsoom?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Upon and below, my friend; but wait until we shall have made
|
||
|
good our escape, and you shall hear the strangest narrative
|
||
|
that ever a Barsoomian of the outer world gave ear to.
|
||
|
Now we must steal our thoats and be well away to the north
|
||
|
before these fellows discover how we have tricked them."
|
||
|
|
||
|
In safety we reached the great gates at the far end of the
|
||
|
courtyard, through which it was necessary to take our
|
||
|
thoats to the avenue beyond. It is no easy matter to handle
|
||
|
five of these great, fierce beasts, which by nature are as wild
|
||
|
and ferocious as their masters and held in subjection by
|
||
|
cruelty and brute force alone.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As we approached them they sniffed our unfamiliar scent
|
||
|
and with squeals of rage circled about us. Their long,
|
||
|
massive necks upreared raised their great, gaping mouths
|
||
|
high above our heads. They are fearsome appearing brutes at
|
||
|
best, but when they are aroused they are fully as dangerous
|
||
|
as they look. The thoat stands a good ten feet at the shoulder.
|
||
|
His hide is sleek and hairless, and of a dark slate colour
|
||
|
on back and sides, shading down his eight legs to a vivid
|
||
|
yellow at the huge, padded, nailless feet; the belly is pure
|
||
|
white. A broad, flat tail, larger at the tip than at the root,
|
||
|
completes the picture of this ferocious green Martian mount
|
||
|
--a fit war steed for these warlike people.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As the thoats are guided by telepathic means alone, there
|
||
|
is no need for rein or bridle, and so our object now was to
|
||
|
find two that would obey our unspoken commands. As they
|
||
|
charged about us we succeeded in mastering them sufficiently
|
||
|
to prevent any concerted attack upon us, but the din of
|
||
|
their squealing was certain to bring investigating warriors
|
||
|
into the courtyard were it to continue much longer.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At length I was successful in reaching the side of one
|
||
|
great brute, and ere he knew what I was about I was firmly
|
||
|
seated astride his glossy back. A moment later Tars Tarkas
|
||
|
had caught and mounted another, and then between us we
|
||
|
herded three or four more toward the great gates.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Tars Tarkas rode ahead and, leaning down to the latch,
|
||
|
threw the barriers open, while I held the loose thoats from
|
||
|
breaking back to the herd. Then together we rode through
|
||
|
into the avenue with our stolen mounts and, without waiting
|
||
|
to close the gates, hurried off toward the southern boundary
|
||
|
of the city.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Thus far our escape had been little short of marvellous,
|
||
|
nor did our good fortune desert us, for we passed the outer
|
||
|
purlieus of the dead city and came to our camp without hearing
|
||
|
even the faintest sound of pursuit.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Here a low whistle, the prearranged signal, apprised the balance
|
||
|
of our party that I was returning, and we were met by the three
|
||
|
with every manifestation of enthusiastic rejoicing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But little time was wasted in narration of our adventure.
|
||
|
Tars Tarkas and Carthoris exchanged the dignified and
|
||
|
formal greetings common upon Barsoom, but I could tell
|
||
|
intuitively that the Thark loved my boy and that Carthoris
|
||
|
reciprocated his affection.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Xodar and the green Jeddak were formally presented to
|
||
|
each other. Then Thuvia was lifted to the least fractious
|
||
|
thoat, Xodar and Carthoris mounted two others, and we set
|
||
|
out at a rapid pace toward the east. At the far extremity
|
||
|
of the city we circled toward the north, and under the
|
||
|
glorious rays of the two moons we sped noiselessly across
|
||
|
the dead sea bottom, away from the Warhoons and the First
|
||
|
Born, but to what new dangers and adventures we knew not.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Toward noon of the following day we halted to rest our
|
||
|
mounts and ourselves. The beasts we hobbled, that they
|
||
|
might move slowly about cropping the ochre moss-like
|
||
|
vegetation which constitutes both food and drink for them
|
||
|
on the march. Thuvia volunteered to remain on watch while
|
||
|
the balance of the party slept for an hour.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It seemed to me that I had but closed my eyes when I
|
||
|
felt her hand upon my shoulder and heard her soft voice
|
||
|
warning me of a new danger.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Arise, O Prince," she whispered. "There be that behind
|
||
|
us which has the appearance of a great body of pursuers."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The girl stood pointing in the direction from whence we
|
||
|
had come, and as I arose and looked, I, too, thought that
|
||
|
I could detect a thin dark line on the far horizon. I awoke
|
||
|
the others. Tars Tarkas, whose giant stature towered high
|
||
|
above the rest of us, could see the farthest.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is a great body of mounted men," he said, "and they
|
||
|
are travelling at high speed."
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was no time to be lost. We sprang to our hobbled
|
||
|
thoats, freed them, and mounted. Then we turned our faces
|
||
|
once more toward the north and took our flight again at the
|
||
|
highest speed of our slowest beast.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For the balance of the day and all the following night we
|
||
|
raced across that ochre wilderness with the pursuers at
|
||
|
our back ever gaining upon us. Slowly but surely they were
|
||
|
lessening the distance between us. Just before dark they had
|
||
|
been close enough for us to plainly distinguish that they were
|
||
|
green Martians, and all during the long night we distinctly
|
||
|
heard the clanking of their accoutrements behind us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As the sun rose on the second day of our flight it disclosed
|
||
|
the pursuing horde not a half-mile in our rear. As they saw
|
||
|
us a fiendish shout of triumph rose from their ranks.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Several miles in advance lay a range of hills--the farther
|
||
|
shore of the dead sea we had been crossing. Could we but
|
||
|
reach these hills our chances of escape would be greatly
|
||
|
enhanced, but Thuvia's mount, although carrying the lightest
|
||
|
burden, already was showing signs of exhaustion. I was
|
||
|
riding beside her when suddenly her animal staggered and
|
||
|
lurched against mine. I saw that he was going down, but
|
||
|
ere he fell I snatched the girl from his back and swung her
|
||
|
to a place upon my own thoat, behind me, where she clung
|
||
|
with her arms about me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This double burden soon proved too much for my already
|
||
|
overtaxed beast, and thus our speed was terribly diminished,
|
||
|
for the others would proceed no faster than the slowest of
|
||
|
us could go. In that little party there was not one who would
|
||
|
desert another; yet we were of different countries, different
|
||
|
colours, different races, different religions--and one of us
|
||
|
was of a different world.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We were quite close to the hills, but the Warhoons were
|
||
|
gaining so rapidly that we had given up all hope of reaching
|
||
|
them in time. Thuvia and I were in the rear, for our beast
|
||
|
was lagging more and more. Suddenly I felt the girl's warm
|
||
|
lips press a kiss upon my shoulder. "For thy sake, O my
|
||
|
Prince," she murmured. Then her arms slipped from about
|
||
|
my waist and she was gone.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I turned and saw that she had deliberately slipped to the
|
||
|
ground in the very path of the cruel demons who pursued
|
||
|
us, thinking that by lightening the burden of my mount it
|
||
|
might thus be enabled to bear me to the safety of the hills.
|
||
|
Poor child! She should have known John Carter better than that.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Turning my thoat, I urged him after her, hoping to reach
|
||
|
her side and bear her on again in our hopeless flight.
|
||
|
Carthoris must have glanced behind him at about the same time
|
||
|
and taken in the situation, for by the time I had reached
|
||
|
Thuvia's side he was there also, and, springing from his
|
||
|
mount, he threw her upon its back and, turning the animal's
|
||
|
head toward the hills, gave the beast a sharp crack across
|
||
|
the rump with the flat of his sword. Then he attempted to
|
||
|
do the same with mine.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The brave boy's act of chivalrous self-sacrifice filled me
|
||
|
with pride, nor did I care that it had wrested from us our
|
||
|
last frail chance for escape. The Warhoons were now close
|
||
|
upon us. Tars Tarkas and Xodar had discovered our absence
|
||
|
and were charging rapidly to our support. Everything pointed
|
||
|
toward a splendid ending of my second journey to Barsoom.
|
||
|
I hated to go out without having seen my divine Princess, and
|
||
|
held her in my arms once again; but if it were not writ upon
|
||
|
the book of Fate that such was to be, then would I take the
|
||
|
most that was coming to me, and in these last few moments
|
||
|
that were to be vouchsafed me before I passed over into that
|
||
|
unguessed future I could at least give such an account of
|
||
|
myself in my chosen vocation as would leave the Warhoons of
|
||
|
the South food for discourse for the next twenty generations.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As Carthoris was not mounted, I slipped from the back of
|
||
|
my own mount and took my place at his side to meet the
|
||
|
charge of the howling devils bearing down upon us. A
|
||
|
moment later Tars Tarkas and Xodar ranged themselves on
|
||
|
either hand, turning their thoats loose that we might all
|
||
|
be on an equal footing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The Warhoons were perhaps a hundred yards from us when a
|
||
|
loud explosion sounded from above and behind us, and almost
|
||
|
at the same instant a shell burst in their advancing ranks.
|
||
|
At once all was confusion. A hundred warriors toppled
|
||
|
to the ground. Riderless thoats plunged hither and
|
||
|
thither among the dead and dying. Dismounted warriors were
|
||
|
trampled underfoot in the stampede which followed. All
|
||
|
semblance of order had left the ranks of the green men, and
|
||
|
as they looked far above our heads to trace the origin of this
|
||
|
unexpected attack, disorder turned to retreat and retreat to a
|
||
|
wild panic. In another moment they were racing as madly
|
||
|
away from us as they had before been charging down upon us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We turned to look in the direction from whence the first
|
||
|
report had come, and there we saw, just clearing the tops of
|
||
|
the nearer hills, a great battleship swinging majestically
|
||
|
through the air. Her bow gun spoke again even as we looked,
|
||
|
and another shell burst among the fleeing Warhoons.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As she drew nearer I could not repress a wild cry of elation,
|
||
|
for upon her bows I saw the device of Helium.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XVI
|
||
|
|
||
|
UNDER ARREST
|
||
|
|
||
|
As Carthoris, Xodar, Tars Tarkas, and I stood gazing at
|
||
|
the magnificent vessel which meant so much to all of us,
|
||
|
we saw a second and then a third top the summit of the
|
||
|
hills and glide gracefully after their sister.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now a score of one-man air scouts were launching from the
|
||
|
upper decks of the nearer vessel, and in a moment more
|
||
|
were speeding in long, swift dives to the ground about us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In another instant we were surrounded by armed sailors,
|
||
|
and an officer had stepped forward to address us, when his
|
||
|
eyes fell upon Carthoris. With an exclamation of surprised
|
||
|
pleasure he sprang forward, and, placing his hands upon
|
||
|
the boy's shoulder, called him by name.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Carthoris, my Prince," he cried, "Kaor! Kaor! Hor Vastus
|
||
|
greets the son of Dejah Thoris, Princess of Helium, and of her
|
||
|
husband, John Carter. Where have you been, O my Prince?
|
||
|
All Helium has been plunged in sorrow. Terrible have been the
|
||
|
calamities that have befallen your great-grandsire's mighty
|
||
|
nation since the fatal day that saw you leave our midst."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Grieve not, my good Hor Vastus," cried Carthoris,
|
||
|
"since I bring not back myself alone to cheer my mother's
|
||
|
heart and the hearts of my beloved people, but also one
|
||
|
whom all Barsoom loved best--her greatest warrior and her
|
||
|
saviour--John Carter, Prince of Helium!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Hor Vastus turned in the direction indicated by Carthoris,
|
||
|
and as his eyes fell upon me he was like to have collapsed
|
||
|
from sheer surprise.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"John Carter!" he exclaimed, and then a sudden troubled
|
||
|
look came into his eyes. "My Prince," he started, "where
|
||
|
hast thou--" and then he stopped, but I knew the question
|
||
|
that his lips dared not frame. The loyal fellow would not
|
||
|
be the one to force from mine a confession of the terrible
|
||
|
truth that I had returned from the bosom of the Iss, the
|
||
|
River of Mystery, back from the shore of the Lost Sea of Korus,
|
||
|
and the Valley Dor.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, my Prince," he continued, as though no thought had
|
||
|
interrupted his greeting, "that you are back is sufficient,
|
||
|
and let Hor Vastus' sword have the high honour of
|
||
|
being first at thy feet." With these words the noble
|
||
|
fellow unbuckled his scabbard and flung his sword upon
|
||
|
the ground before me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Could you know the customs and the character of red
|
||
|
Martians you would appreciate the depth of meaning that
|
||
|
that simple act conveyed to me and to all about us who
|
||
|
witnessed it. The thing was equivalent to saying, "My
|
||
|
sword, my body, my life, my soul are yours to do with as
|
||
|
you wish. Until death and after death I look to you alone
|
||
|
for authority for my every act. Be you right or wrong,
|
||
|
your word shall be my only truth. Whoso raises his hand
|
||
|
against you must answer to my sword."
|
||
|
|
||
|
It is the oath of fealty that men occasionally pay to a
|
||
|
Jeddak whose high character and chivalrous acts have
|
||
|
inspired the enthusiastic love of his followers. Never had
|
||
|
I known this high tribute paid to a lesser mortal. There was
|
||
|
but one response possible. I stooped and lifted the sword
|
||
|
from the ground, raised the hilt to my lips, and then,
|
||
|
stepping to Hor Vastus, I buckled the weapon upon him
|
||
|
with my own hands.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hor Vastus," I said, placing my hand upon his shoulder,
|
||
|
"you know best the promptings of your own heart. That I
|
||
|
shall need your sword I have little doubt, but accept from
|
||
|
John Carter upon his sacred honour the assurance that he
|
||
|
will never call upon you to draw this sword other than in
|
||
|
the cause of truth, justice, and righteousness."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That I knew, my Prince," he replied, "ere ever I threw
|
||
|
my beloved blade at thy feet."
|
||
|
|
||
|
As we spoke other fliers came and went between the
|
||
|
ground and the battleship, and presently a larger boat was
|
||
|
launched from above, one capable of carrying a dozen
|
||
|
persons, perhaps, and dropped lightly near us. As she touched,
|
||
|
an officer sprang from her deck to the ground, and, advancing
|
||
|
to Hor Vastus, saluted.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Kantos Kan desires that this party whom we have rescued be
|
||
|
brought immediately to the deck of the Xavarian," he said.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As we approached the little craft I looked about for the
|
||
|
members of my party and for the first time noticed that
|
||
|
Thuvia was not among them. Questioning elicited the fact
|
||
|
that none had seen her since Carthoris had sent her thoat
|
||
|
galloping madly toward the hills, in the hope of carrying her
|
||
|
out of harm's way.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Immediately Hor Vastus dispatched a dozen air scouts in
|
||
|
as many directions to search for her. It could not be
|
||
|
possible that she had gone far since we had last seen her.
|
||
|
We others stepped to the deck of the craft that had been sent
|
||
|
to fetch us, and a moment later were upon the Xavarian.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The first man to greet me was Kantos Kan himself. My
|
||
|
old friend had won to the highest place in the navy of
|
||
|
Helium, but he was still to me the same brave comrade
|
||
|
who had shared with me the privations of a Warhoon
|
||
|
dungeon, the terrible atrocities of the Great Games, and
|
||
|
later the dangers of our search for Dejah Thoris within
|
||
|
the hostile city of Zodanga.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then I had been an unknown wanderer upon a strange
|
||
|
planet, and he a simple padwar in the navy of Helium.
|
||
|
To-day he commanded all Helium's great terrors of the
|
||
|
skies, and I was a Prince of the House of Tardos Mors,
|
||
|
Jeddak of Helium.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He did not ask me where I had been. Like Hor Vastus,
|
||
|
he too dreaded the truth and would not be the one to
|
||
|
wrest a statement from me. That it must come some time he
|
||
|
well knew, but until it came he seemed satisfied to but
|
||
|
know that I was with him once more. He greeted Carthoris
|
||
|
and Tars Tarkas with the keenest delight, but he asked
|
||
|
neither where he had been. He could scarcely keep his
|
||
|
hands off the boy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You do not know, John Carter," he said to me, "how we of
|
||
|
Helium love this son of yours. It is as though all the
|
||
|
great love we bore his noble father and his poor mother
|
||
|
had been centred in him. When it became known that he
|
||
|
was lost, ten million people wept."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What mean you, Kantos Kan," I whispered, "by 'his
|
||
|
poor mother'?" for the words had seemed to carry a sinister
|
||
|
meaning which I could not fathom.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He drew me to one side.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"For a year," he said, "Ever since Carthoris disappeared,
|
||
|
Dejah Thoris has grieved and mourned for her lost boy.
|
||
|
The blow of years ago, when you did not return from the
|
||
|
atmosphere plant, was lessened to some extent by the duties of
|
||
|
motherhood, for your son broke his white shell that very night."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That she suffered terribly then, all Helium knew, for
|
||
|
did not all Helium suffer with her the loss of her lord! But
|
||
|
with the boy gone there was nothing left, and after expedition
|
||
|
upon expedition returned with the same hopeless tale
|
||
|
of no clue as to his whereabouts, our beloved Princess
|
||
|
drooped lower and lower, until all who saw her felt that it
|
||
|
could be but a matter of days ere she went to join her
|
||
|
loved ones within the precincts of the Valley Dor.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"As a last resort, Mors Kajak, her father, and Tardos Mors,
|
||
|
her grandfather, took command of two mighty expeditions,
|
||
|
and a month ago sailed away to explore every inch of
|
||
|
ground in the northern hemisphere of Barsoom. For two
|
||
|
weeks no word has come back from them, but rumours were
|
||
|
rife that they had met with a terrible disaster and
|
||
|
that all were dead.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"About this time Zat Arras renewed his importunities for
|
||
|
her hand in marriage. He has been for ever after her since
|
||
|
you disappeared. She hated him and feared him, but with
|
||
|
both her father and grandfather gone, Zat Arras was very
|
||
|
powerful, for he is still Jed of Zodanga, to which position,
|
||
|
you will remember, Tardos Mors appointed him after you
|
||
|
had refused the honour.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He had a secret audience with her six days ago. What
|
||
|
took place none knows, but the next day Dejah Thoris
|
||
|
had disappeared, and with her had gone a dozen of her
|
||
|
household guard and body servants, including Sola the
|
||
|
green woman--Tars Tarkas' daughter, you recall. No word
|
||
|
left they of their intentions, but it is always thus with those
|
||
|
who go upon the voluntary pilgrimage from which none
|
||
|
returns. We cannot think aught than that Dejah Thoris has
|
||
|
sought the icy bosom of Iss, and that her devoted servants
|
||
|
have chosen to accompany her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Zat Arras was at Helium when she disappeared. He commands
|
||
|
this fleet which has been searching for her since.
|
||
|
No trace of her have we found, and I fear that it be
|
||
|
a futile quest."
|
||
|
|
||
|
While we talked, Hor Vastus' fliers were returning to
|
||
|
the Xavarian. Not one, however, had discovered a trace of
|
||
|
Thuvia. I was much depressed over the news of Dejah
|
||
|
Thoris' disappearance, and now there was added the further
|
||
|
burden of apprehension concerning the fate of this girl whom
|
||
|
I believed to be the daughter of some proud Barsoomian
|
||
|
house, and it had been my intention to make every effort
|
||
|
to return her to her people.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was about to ask Kantos Kan to prosecute a further
|
||
|
search for her when a flier from the flagship of the fleet
|
||
|
arrived at the Xavarian with an officer bearing a message
|
||
|
to Kantos Kan from Arras.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My friend read the dispatch and then turned to me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Zat Arras commands me to bring our 'prisoners' before
|
||
|
him. There is naught else to do. He is supreme in Helium,
|
||
|
yet it would be far more in keeping with chivalry and good
|
||
|
taste were he to come hither and greet the saviour of
|
||
|
Barsoom with the honours that are his due."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You know full well, my friend," I said, smiling, "that
|
||
|
Zat Arras has good cause to hate me. Nothing would please
|
||
|
him better than to humiliate me and then to kill me. Now
|
||
|
that he has so excellent an excuse, let us go and see if he
|
||
|
has the courage to take advantage of it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Summoning Carthoris, Tars Tarkas, and Xodar, we entered
|
||
|
the small flier with Kantos Kan and Zat Arras' officer, and
|
||
|
in a moment were stepping to the deck of Zat Arras' flagship.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As we approached the Jed of Zodanga no sign of greeting
|
||
|
or recognition crossed his face; not even to Carthoris
|
||
|
did he vouchsafe a friendly word. His attitude was cold,
|
||
|
haughty, and uncompromising.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Kaor, Zat Arras," I said in greeting, but he did not respond.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why were these prisoners not disarmed?" he asked to Kantos Kan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They are not prisoners, Zat Arras," replied the officer.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Two of them are of Helium's noblest family. Tars Tarkas,
|
||
|
Jeddak of Thark, is Tardos Mors' best beloved ally. The
|
||
|
other is a friend and companion of the Prince of Helium--
|
||
|
that is enough for me to know."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is not enough for me, however," retorted Zat Arras.
|
||
|
"More must I hear from those who have taken the pilgrimage
|
||
|
than their names. Where have you been, John Carter?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have just come from the Valley Dor and the Land of
|
||
|
the First Born, Zat Arras," I replied.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah!" he exclaimed in evident pleasure, "you do not
|
||
|
deny it, then? You have returned from the bosom of Iss?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have come back from a land of false hope, from a
|
||
|
valley of torture and death; with my companions I have
|
||
|
escaped from the hideous clutches of lying fiends. I have
|
||
|
come back to the Barsoom that I saved from a painless
|
||
|
death to again save her, but this time from death in its
|
||
|
most frightful form."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Cease, blasphemer!" cried Zat Arras. "Hope not to
|
||
|
save thy cowardly carcass by inventing horrid lies to--"
|
||
|
But he got no further. One does not call John Carter
|
||
|
"coward" and "liar" thus lightly, and Zat Arras should have
|
||
|
known it. Before a hand could be raised to stop me, I was
|
||
|
at his side and one hand grasped his throat.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come I from heaven or hell, Zat Arras, you will find
|
||
|
me still the same John Carter that I have always been; nor
|
||
|
did ever man call me such names and live--without apologizing."
|
||
|
And with that I commenced to bend him back across
|
||
|
my knee and tighten my grip upon his throat.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Seize him!" cried Zat Arras, and a dozen officers sprang
|
||
|
forward to assist him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Kantos Kan came close and whispered to me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Desist, I beg of you. It will but involve us all, for I
|
||
|
cannot see these men lay hands upon you without aiding you.
|
||
|
My officers and men will join me and we shall have a
|
||
|
mutiny then that may lead to the revolution. For the sake of
|
||
|
Tardos Mors and Helium, desist."
|
||
|
|
||
|
At his words I released Zat Arras and, turning my back
|
||
|
upon him, walked toward the ship's rail.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come, Kantos Kan," I said, "the Prince of Helium
|
||
|
would return to the Xavarian."
|
||
|
|
||
|
None interfered. Zat Arras stood white and trembling
|
||
|
amidst his officers. Some there were who looked upon him
|
||
|
with scorn and drew toward me, while one, a man long
|
||
|
in the service and confidence of Tardos Mors, spoke to me
|
||
|
in a low tone as I passed him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You may count my metal among your fighting-men,
|
||
|
John Carter," he said.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I thanked him and passed on. In silence we embarked,
|
||
|
and shortly after stepped once more upon the deck of the
|
||
|
Xavarian. Fifteen minutes later we received orders from the
|
||
|
flagship to proceed toward Helium.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Our journey thither was uneventful. Carthoris and I were
|
||
|
wrapped in the gloomiest of thoughts. Kantos Kan was sombre
|
||
|
in contemplation of the further calamity that might fall upon
|
||
|
Helium should Zat Arras attempt to follow the age-old precedent
|
||
|
that allotted a terrible death to fugitives from the Valley
|
||
|
Dor. Tars Tarkas grieved for the loss of his daughter. Xodar
|
||
|
alone was care-free--a fugitive and outlaw, he could be no
|
||
|
worse off in Helium than elsewhere.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Let us hope that we may at least go out with good red
|
||
|
blood upon our blades," he said. It was a simple wish
|
||
|
and one most likely to be gratified.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Among the officers of the Xavarian I thought I could
|
||
|
discern division into factions ere we had reached Helium.
|
||
|
There were those who gathered about Carthoris and myself
|
||
|
whenever the opportunity presented, while about an equal
|
||
|
number held aloof from us. They offered us only the most
|
||
|
courteous treatment, but were evidently bound by their
|
||
|
superstitious belief in the doctrine of Dor and Iss and Korus.
|
||
|
I could not blame them, for I knew how strong a hold a
|
||
|
creed, however ridiculous it may be, may gain upon an
|
||
|
otherwise intelligent people.
|
||
|
|
||
|
By returning from Dor we had committed a sacrilege;
|
||
|
by recounting our adventures there, and stating the facts
|
||
|
as they existed we had outraged the religion of their fathers.
|
||
|
We were blasphemers--lying heretics. Even those who still
|
||
|
clung to us from personal love and loyalty I think did so
|
||
|
in the face of the fact that at heart they questioned our
|
||
|
veracity--it is very hard to accept a new religion for an old,
|
||
|
no matter how alluring the promises of the new may be; but to
|
||
|
reject the old as a tissue of falsehoods without being offered
|
||
|
anything in its stead is indeed a most difficult thing to ask
|
||
|
of any people.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Kantos Kan would not talk of our experiences among the therns
|
||
|
and the First Born.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is enough," he said, "that I jeopardize my life here
|
||
|
and hereafter by countenancing you at all--do not ask me
|
||
|
to add still further to my sins by listening to what I have
|
||
|
always been taught was the rankest heresy."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I knew that sooner or later the time must come when
|
||
|
our friends and enemies would be forced to declare
|
||
|
themselves openly. When we reached Helium there must be
|
||
|
an accounting, and if Tardos Mors had not returned I feared
|
||
|
that the enmity of Zat Arras might weigh heavily against
|
||
|
us, for he represented the government of Helium. To take
|
||
|
sides against him were equivalent to treason. The majority
|
||
|
of the troops would doubtless follow the lead of their
|
||
|
officers, and I knew that many of the highest and most
|
||
|
powerful men of both land and air forces would cleave to
|
||
|
John Carter in the face of god, man, or devil.
|
||
|
|
||
|
On the other hand, the majority of the populace
|
||
|
unquestionably would demand that we pay the penalty of
|
||
|
our sacrilege. The outlook seemed dark from whatever
|
||
|
angle I viewed it, but my mind was so torn with anguish
|
||
|
at the thought of Dejah Thoris that I realize now that I
|
||
|
gave the terrible question of Helium's plight but scant
|
||
|
attention at that time.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was always before me, day and night, a horrible
|
||
|
nightmare of the frightful scenes through which I knew
|
||
|
my Princess might even then be passing--the horrid plant
|
||
|
men--the ferocious white apes. At times I would cover
|
||
|
my face with my hands in a vain effort to shut out the
|
||
|
fearful thing from my mind.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was in the forenoon that we arrived above the mile-
|
||
|
high scarlet tower which marks greater Helium from her
|
||
|
twin city. As we descended in great circles toward the
|
||
|
navy docks a mighty multitude could be seen surging in the
|
||
|
streets beneath. Helium had been notified by radio-aerogram
|
||
|
of our approach.
|
||
|
|
||
|
From the deck of the Xavarian we four, Carthoris, Tars
|
||
|
Tarkas, Xodar, and I, were transferred to a lesser flier
|
||
|
to be transported to quarters within the Temple of Reward.
|
||
|
It is here that Martian justice is meted to benefactor and
|
||
|
malefactor. Here the hero is decorated. Here the felon
|
||
|
is condemned. We were taken into the temple from the
|
||
|
landing stage upon the roof, so that we did not pass among
|
||
|
the people at all, as is customary. Always before I had
|
||
|
seen prisoners of note, or returned wanderers of eminence,
|
||
|
paraded from the Gate of Jeddaks to the Temple of Reward
|
||
|
up the broad Avenue of Ancestors through dense crowds of
|
||
|
jeering or cheering citizens.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I knew that Zat Arras dared not trust the people near to
|
||
|
us, for he feared that their love for Carthoris and myself
|
||
|
might break into a demonstration which would wipe out
|
||
|
their superstitious horror of the crime we were to be
|
||
|
charged with. What his plans were I could only guess, but
|
||
|
that they were sinister was evidenced by the fact that only
|
||
|
his most trusted servitors accompanied us upon the flier to
|
||
|
the Temple of Reward.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We were lodged in a room upon the south side of the
|
||
|
temple, overlooking the Avenue of Ancestors down which
|
||
|
we could see the full length to the Gate of Jeddaks, five
|
||
|
miles away. The people in the temple plaza and in the
|
||
|
streets for a distance of a full mile were standing as close
|
||
|
packed as it was possible for them to get. They were very
|
||
|
orderly--there were neither scoffs nor plaudits, and when
|
||
|
they saw us at the window above them there were many who
|
||
|
buried their faces in their arms and wept.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Late in the afternoon a messenger arrived from Zat Arras
|
||
|
to inform us that we would be tried by an impartial body
|
||
|
of nobles in the great hall of the temple at the 1st
|
||
|
zode* on the following day, or about 8:40 A.M. Earth time.
|
||
|
|
||
|
*Wherever Captain Carter has used Martian measurements of time,
|
||
|
distance, weight, and the like I have translated them into as nearly their
|
||
|
equivalent in earthly values as is possible. His notes contain many
|
||
|
Martian tables, and a great volume of scientific data, but since the
|
||
|
International Astronomic Society is at present engaged in classifying,
|
||
|
investigating, and verifying this vast fund of remarkable and valuable
|
||
|
information, I have felt that it will add nothing to the interest of Captain
|
||
|
Carter's story or to the sum total of human knowledge to maintain a strict
|
||
|
adherence to the original manuscript in these matters, while it might
|
||
|
readily confuse the reader and detract from the interest of the history.
|
||
|
For those who may be interested, however, I will explain that the Martian
|
||
|
day is a trifle over 24 hours 37 minutes duration (Earth time). This the
|
||
|
Martians divide into ten equal parts, commencing the day at about 6 A.M.
|
||
|
Earth time. The zodes are divided into fifty shorter periods, each of
|
||
|
which in turn is composed of 200 brief periods of time, about equivalent
|
||
|
to the earthly second. The Barsoomian Table of Time as here given is but
|
||
|
a part of the full table appearing in Captain Carter's notes.
|
||
|
|
||
|
TABLE
|
||
|
|
||
|
200 tals . . . . . . . . . 1 xat
|
||
|
|
||
|
50 xats . . . . . . . . . 1 zode
|
||
|
|
||
|
10 zodes . . . . . . . . 1 revolution of Mars upon its axis.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XVII
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE DEATH SENTENCE
|
||
|
|
||
|
A few moments before the appointed time on the following
|
||
|
morning a strong guard of Zat Arras' officers appeared at our
|
||
|
quarters to conduct us to the great hall of the temple.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In twos we entered the chamber and marched down the
|
||
|
broad Aisle of Hope, as it is called, to the platform
|
||
|
in the centre of the hall. Before and behind us marched
|
||
|
armed guards, while three solid ranks of Zodangan soldiery
|
||
|
lined either side of the aisle from the entrance to the rostrum.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As we reached the raised enclosure I saw our judges.
|
||
|
As is the custom upon Barsoom there were thirty-one,
|
||
|
supposedly selected by lot from men of the noble class, for
|
||
|
nobles were on trial. But to my amazement I saw no single
|
||
|
friendly face among them. Practically all were Zodangans,
|
||
|
and it was I to whom Zodanga owed her defeat at the
|
||
|
hands of the green hordes and her subsequent vassalage to
|
||
|
Helium. There could be little justice here for John Carter,
|
||
|
or his son, or for the great Thark who had commanded the
|
||
|
savage tribesmen who overran Zodanga's broad avenues,
|
||
|
looting, burning, and murdering.
|
||
|
|
||
|
About us the vast circular coliseum was packed to its full
|
||
|
capacity. All classes were represented--all ages, and both
|
||
|
sexes. As we entered the hall the hum of subdued conversation
|
||
|
ceased until as we halted upon the platform, or Throne
|
||
|
of Righteousness, the silence of death enveloped the
|
||
|
ten thousand spectators.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The judges were seated in a great circle about the
|
||
|
periphery of the circular platform. We were assigned seats
|
||
|
with our backs toward a small platform in the exact centre
|
||
|
of the larger one. This placed us facing the judges and the
|
||
|
audience. Upon the smaller platform each would take his
|
||
|
place while his case was being heard.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Zat Arras himself sat in the golden chair of the presiding
|
||
|
magistrate. As we were seated and our guards retired to the
|
||
|
foot of the stairway leading to the platform, he arose and
|
||
|
called my name.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"John Carter," he cried, "take your place upon the Pedestal
|
||
|
of Truth to be judged impartially according to your acts
|
||
|
and here to know the reward you have earned thereby."
|
||
|
Then turning to and fro toward the audience he narrated the
|
||
|
acts upon the value of which my reward was to be determined.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Know you, O judges and people of Helium," he said, "that
|
||
|
John Carter, one time Prince of Helium, has returned by his
|
||
|
own statement from the Valley Dor and even from the
|
||
|
Temple of Issus itself. That, in the presence of many men
|
||
|
of Helium he has blasphemed against the Sacred Iss, and
|
||
|
against the Valley Dor, and the Lost Sea of Korus, and the
|
||
|
Holy Therns themselves, and even against Issus, Goddess of
|
||
|
Death, and of Life Eternal. And know you further by
|
||
|
witness of thine own eyes that see him here now upon the
|
||
|
Pedestal of Truth that he has indeed returned from these
|
||
|
sacred precincts in the face of our ancient customs, and in
|
||
|
violation of the sanctity of our ancient religion.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He who be once dead may not live again. He who attempts
|
||
|
it must be made dead for ever. Judges, your duty lies
|
||
|
plain before you--here can be no testimony in
|
||
|
contravention of truth. What reward shall be meted to
|
||
|
John Carter in accordance with the acts he has committed?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Death!" shouted one of the judges.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And then a man sprang to his feet in the audience, and raising
|
||
|
his hand on high, cried: "Justice! Justice! Justice!"
|
||
|
It was Kantos Kan, and as all eyes turned toward him he
|
||
|
leaped past the Zodangan soldiery and sprang upon the platform.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What manner of justice be this?" he cried to Zat Arras.
|
||
|
"The defendant has not been heard, nor has he had an
|
||
|
opportunity to call others in his behalf. In the name of
|
||
|
the people of Helium I demand fair and impartial treatment
|
||
|
for the Prince of Helium."
|
||
|
|
||
|
A great cry arose from the audience then: "Justice!
|
||
|
Justice! Justice!" and Zat Arras dared not deny them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Speak, then," he snarled, turning to me; "but blaspheme
|
||
|
not against the things that are sacred upon Barsoom."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Men of Helium," I cried, turning to the spectators, and
|
||
|
speaking over the heads of my judges, "how can John Carter
|
||
|
expect justice from the men of Zodanga? He cannot nor
|
||
|
does he ask it. It is to the men of Helium that he states
|
||
|
his case; nor does he appeal for mercy to any. It is not in
|
||
|
his own cause that he speaks now--it is in thine. In the
|
||
|
cause of your wives and daughters, and of wives and daughters
|
||
|
yet unborn. It is to save them from the unthinkably atrocious
|
||
|
indignities that I have seen heaped upon the fair women
|
||
|
of Barsoom in the place men call the Temple of Issus.
|
||
|
It is to save them from the sucking embrace of the plant men,
|
||
|
from the fangs of the great white apes of Dor, from the cruel
|
||
|
lust of the Holy Therns, from all that the cold, dead Iss
|
||
|
carries them to from homes of love and life and happiness.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Sits there no man here who does not know the history of
|
||
|
John Carter. How he came among you from another world
|
||
|
and rose from a prisoner among the green men, through
|
||
|
torture and persecution, to a place high among the highest
|
||
|
of Barsoom. Nor ever did you know John Carter to lie in
|
||
|
his own behalf, or to say aught that might harm the people
|
||
|
of Barsoom, or to speak lightly of the strange religion which
|
||
|
he respected without understanding.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There be no man here, or elsewhere upon Barsoom to-day
|
||
|
who does not owe his life directly to a single act of mine,
|
||
|
in which I sacrificed myself and the happiness of my Princess
|
||
|
that you might live. And so, men of Helium, I think that I
|
||
|
have the right to demand that I be heard, that I be believed,
|
||
|
and that you let me serve you and save you from the false
|
||
|
hereafter of Dor and Issus as I saved you from the real death
|
||
|
that other day.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is to you of Helium that I speak now. When I am
|
||
|
done let the men of Zodanga have their will with me. Zat
|
||
|
Arras has taken my sword from me, so the men of Zodanga
|
||
|
no longer fear me. Will you listen?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Speak, John Carter, Prince of Helium," cried a great noble
|
||
|
from the audience, and the multitude echoed his permission,
|
||
|
until the building rocked with the noise of their demonstration.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Zat Arras knew better than to interfere with such a sentiment
|
||
|
as was expressed that day in the Temple of Reward, and so for
|
||
|
two hours I talked with the people of Helium.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But when I had finished, Zat Arras arose and, turning to
|
||
|
the judges, said in a low tone: "My nobles, you have
|
||
|
heard John Carter's plea; every opportunity has been given
|
||
|
him to prove his innocence if he be not guilty; but instead
|
||
|
he has but utilized the time in further blasphemy. What,
|
||
|
gentlemen, is your verdict?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Death to the blasphemer!" cried one, springing to his feet,
|
||
|
and in an instant the entire thirty-one judges were on their feet
|
||
|
with upraised swords in token of the unanimity of their verdict.
|
||
|
|
||
|
If the people did not hear Zat Arras' charge, they certainly
|
||
|
did hear the verdict of the tribunal. A sullen murmur
|
||
|
rose louder and louder about the packed coliseum, and then
|
||
|
Kantos Kan, who had not left the platform since first he had
|
||
|
taken his place near me, raised his hand for silence. When he
|
||
|
could be heard he spoke to the people in a cool and level voice.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You have heard the fate that the men of Zodanga would
|
||
|
mete to Helium's noblest hero. It may be the duty of
|
||
|
the men of Helium to accept the verdict as final. Let each
|
||
|
man act according to his own heart. Here is the answer of
|
||
|
Kantos Kan, head of the navy of Helium, to Zat Arras and
|
||
|
his judges," and with that he unbuckled his scabbard and
|
||
|
threw his sword at my feet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In an instant soldiers and citizens, officers and nobles
|
||
|
were crowding past the soldiers of Zodanga and forcing their
|
||
|
way to the Throne of Righteousness. A hundred men surged
|
||
|
upon the platform, and a hundred blades rattled and clanked
|
||
|
to the floor at my feet. Zat Arras and his officers were
|
||
|
furious, but they were helpless. One by one I raised the
|
||
|
swords to my lips and buckled them again upon their owners.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come," sand Kantos Kan, "we will escort John Carter and
|
||
|
his party to his own palace," and they formed about us and
|
||
|
started toward the stairs leading to the Aisle of Hope.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Stop!" cried Zat Arras. "Soldiers of Helium, let no
|
||
|
prisoner leave the Throne of Righteousness."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The soldiery from Zodanga were the only organized body
|
||
|
of Heliumetic troops within the temple, so Zat Arras was
|
||
|
confident that his orders would be obeyed, but I do not
|
||
|
think that he looked for the opposition that was raised the
|
||
|
moment the soldiers advanced toward the throne.
|
||
|
|
||
|
From every quarter of the coliseum swords flashed and
|
||
|
men rushed threateningly upon the Zodangans. Some one
|
||
|
raised a cry: "Tardos Mors is dead--a thousand years to
|
||
|
John Carter, Jeddak of Helium." As I heard that and saw the
|
||
|
ugly attitude of the men of Helium toward the soldiers of
|
||
|
Zat Arras, I knew that only a miracle could avert a clash
|
||
|
that would end in civil war.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hold!" I cried, leaping to the Pedestal of Truth once
|
||
|
more. "Let no man move till I am done. A single sword
|
||
|
thrust here to-day may plunge Helium into a bitter and
|
||
|
bloody war the results of which none can foresee. It
|
||
|
will turn brother against brother and father against son.
|
||
|
No man's life is worth that sacrifice. Rather would I
|
||
|
submit to the biased judgment of Zat Arras than be the
|
||
|
cause of civil strife in Helium.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Let us each give in a point to the other, and let this entire
|
||
|
matter rest until Tardos Mors returns, or Mors Kajak, his son.
|
||
|
If neither be back at the end of a year a second trial
|
||
|
may be held--the thing has a precedent." And then turning
|
||
|
to Zat Arras, I said in a low voice: "Unless you be a bigger
|
||
|
fool than I take you to be, you will grasp the chance I am
|
||
|
offering you ere it is too late. Once that multitude of swords
|
||
|
below is drawn against your soldiery no man upon Barsoom--
|
||
|
not even Tardos Mors himself--can avert the consequences.
|
||
|
What say you? Speak quickly."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The Jed of Zodangan Helium raised his voice to the angry
|
||
|
sea beneath us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Stay your hands, men of Helium," he shouted, his voice
|
||
|
trembling with rage. "The sentence of the court is passed,
|
||
|
but the day of retribution has not been set. I, Zat Arras,
|
||
|
Jed of Zodanga, appreciating the royal connections of the
|
||
|
prisoner and his past services to Helium and Barsoom, grant a
|
||
|
respite of one year, or until the return of Mors Kajak, or
|
||
|
Tardos Mors to Helium. Disperse quietly to your houses. Go."
|
||
|
|
||
|
No one moved. Instead, they stood in tense silence with their
|
||
|
eyes fastened upon me, as though waiting for a signal to attack.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Clear the temple," commanded Zat Arras, in a low tone to one
|
||
|
of his officers.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Fearing the result of an attempt to carry out this order by
|
||
|
force, I stepped to the edge of the platform and, pointing
|
||
|
toward the main entrance, bid them pass out. As one man
|
||
|
they turned at my request and filed, silent and threatening,
|
||
|
past the soldiers of Zat Arras, Jed of Zodanga, who stood
|
||
|
scowling in impotent rage.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Kantos Kan with the others who had sworn allegiance to me
|
||
|
still stood upon the Throne of Righteousness with me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come," said Kantos Kan to me, "we will escort you to
|
||
|
your palace, my Prince. Come, Carthoris and Xodar. Come,
|
||
|
Tars Tarkas." And with a haughty sneer for Zat Arras upon
|
||
|
his handsome lips, he turned and strode to the throne steps
|
||
|
and up the Aisle of Hope. We four and the hundred loyal
|
||
|
ones followed behind him, nor was a hand raised to stay us,
|
||
|
though glowering eyes followed our triumphal march
|
||
|
through the temple.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In the avenues we found a press of people, but they
|
||
|
opened a pathway for us, and many were the swords that
|
||
|
were flung at my feet as I passed through the city of Helium
|
||
|
toward my palace upon the outskirts. Here my old slaves fell
|
||
|
upon their knees and kissed my hands as I greeted them.
|
||
|
They cared not where I had been. It was enough that I
|
||
|
had returned to them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, master," cried one, "if our divine Princess were but
|
||
|
here this would be a day indeed."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Tears came to my eyes, so that I was forced to turn
|
||
|
away that I might hide my emotions. Carthoris wept openly
|
||
|
as the slaves pressed about him with expressions of affection,
|
||
|
and words of sorrow for our common loss. It was now that
|
||
|
Tars Tarkas for the first time learned that his daughter, Sola,
|
||
|
had accompanied Dejah Thoris upon the last long pilgrimage.
|
||
|
I had not had the heart to tell him what Kantos Kan had
|
||
|
told me. With the stoicism of the green Martian he showed
|
||
|
no sign of suffering, yet I knew that his grief was as
|
||
|
poignant as my own. In marked contrast to his kind, he had
|
||
|
in well-developed form the kindlier human characteristics
|
||
|
of love, friendship, and charity.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was a sad and sombre party that sat at the feast of welcome
|
||
|
in the great dining hall of the palace of the Prince of Helium
|
||
|
that day. We were over a hundred strong, not counting the
|
||
|
members of my little court, for Dejah Thoris and I had
|
||
|
maintained a household consistent with our royal rank.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The board, according to red Martian custom, was triangular,
|
||
|
for there were three in our family. Carthoris and I presided
|
||
|
in the centre of our sides of the table--midway of the
|
||
|
third side Dejah Thoris' high-backed, carven chair stood
|
||
|
vacant except for her gorgeous wedding trappings and jewels
|
||
|
which were draped upon it. Behind stood a slave as in the
|
||
|
days when his mistress had occupied her place at the board,
|
||
|
ready to do her bidding. It was the way upon Barsoom, so I
|
||
|
endured the anguish of it, though it wrung my heart to see
|
||
|
that silent chair where should have been my laughing and vivacious
|
||
|
Princess keeping the great hall ringing with her merry gaiety.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At my right sat Kantos Kan, while to the right of Dejah
|
||
|
Thoris' empty place Tars Tarkas sat in a huge chair before
|
||
|
a raised section of the board which years ago I had had
|
||
|
constructed to meet the requirements of his mighty bulk.
|
||
|
The place of honour at a Martian hoard is always at the
|
||
|
hostess's right, and this place was ever reserved by
|
||
|
Dejah Thoris for the great Thark upon the occasions
|
||
|
that he was in Helium.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Hor Vastus sat in the seat of honour upon Carthoris' side
|
||
|
of the table. There was little general conversation. It was a
|
||
|
quiet and saddened party. The loss of Dejah Thoris was
|
||
|
still fresh in the minds of all, and to this was added fear
|
||
|
for the safety of Tardos Mors and Mors Kajak, as well
|
||
|
as doubt and uncertainty as to the fate of Helium, should it
|
||
|
prove true that she was permanently deprived of her great Jeddak.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Suddenly our attention was attracted by the sound of distant
|
||
|
shouting, as of many people raising their voices at once,
|
||
|
but whether in anger or rejoicing, we could not tell.
|
||
|
Nearer and nearer came the tumult. A slave rushed into the
|
||
|
dining hall to cry that a great concourse of people was swarming
|
||
|
through the palace gates. A second burst upon the heels of the
|
||
|
first alternately laughing and shrieking as a madman.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Dejah Thoris is found!" he cried. "A messenger from Dejah Thoris!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I waited to hear no more. The great windows of the
|
||
|
dining hall overlooked the avenue leading to the main gates
|
||
|
--they were upon the opposite side of the hall from me with
|
||
|
the table intervening. I did not waste time in circling the great
|
||
|
board--with a single leap I cleared table and diners and
|
||
|
sprang upon the balcony beyond. Thirty feet below lay the
|
||
|
scarlet sward of the lawn and beyond were many people
|
||
|
crowding about a great thoat which bore a rider headed
|
||
|
toward the palace. I vaulted to the ground below and ran
|
||
|
swiftly toward the advancing party.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I came near to them I saw that the figure on the thoat was Sola.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Where is the Princess of Helium?" I cried.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The green girl slid from her mighty mount and ran toward me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"O my Prince! My Prince!" she cried. "She is gone for ever.
|
||
|
Even now she may be a captive upon the lesser moon.
|
||
|
The black pirates of Barsoom have stolen her."
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XVIII
|
||
|
|
||
|
SOLA'S STORY
|
||
|
|
||
|
Once within the palace, I drew Sola to the dining hall,
|
||
|
and, when she had greeted her father after the formal manner
|
||
|
of the green men, she told the story of the pilgrimage and
|
||
|
capture of Dejah Thoris.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Seven days ago, after her audience with Zat Arras, Dejah Thoris
|
||
|
attempted to slip from the palace in the dead of night.
|
||
|
Although I had not heard the outcome of her interview with
|
||
|
Zat Arras I knew that something had occurred then to cause
|
||
|
her the keenest mental agony, and when I discovered her creeping
|
||
|
from the palace I did not need to be told her destination.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hastily arousing a dozen of her most faithful guards, I
|
||
|
explained my fears to them, and as one they enlisted with me
|
||
|
to follow our beloved Princess in her wanderings, even to
|
||
|
the Sacred Iss and the Valley Dor. We came upon her but a
|
||
|
short distance from the palace. With her was faithful Woola
|
||
|
the hound, but none other. When we overtook her she
|
||
|
feigned anger, and ordered us back to the palace, but for
|
||
|
once we disobeyed her, and when she found that we would
|
||
|
not let her go upon the last long pilgrimage alone, she wept
|
||
|
and embraced us, and together we went out into the night
|
||
|
toward the south.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The following day we came upon a herd of small thoats,
|
||
|
and thereafter we were mounted and made good time. We
|
||
|
travelled very fast and very far due south until the morning
|
||
|
of the fifth day we sighted a great fleet of battleships sailing
|
||
|
north. They saw us before we could seek shelter, and soon
|
||
|
we were surrounded by a horde of black men. The Princess's
|
||
|
guard fought nobly to the end, but they were soon overcome
|
||
|
and slain. Only Dejah Thoris and I were spared.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When she realized that she was in the clutches of the
|
||
|
black pirates, she attempted to take her own life, but one
|
||
|
of the blacks tore her dagger from her, and then they bound
|
||
|
us both so that we could not use our hands.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The fleet continued north after capturing us. There were
|
||
|
about twenty large battleships in all, besides a number of
|
||
|
small swift cruisers. That evening one of the smaller
|
||
|
cruisers that had been far in advance of the fleet returned
|
||
|
with a prisoner--a young red woman whom they had picked up in
|
||
|
a range of hills under the very noses, they said, of a fleet of
|
||
|
three red Martian battleships.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"From scraps of conversation which we overheard it was
|
||
|
evident that the black pirates were searching for a party
|
||
|
of fugitives that had escaped them several days prior. That
|
||
|
they considered the capture of the young woman important
|
||
|
was evident from the long and earnest interview the
|
||
|
commander of the fleet held with her when she was brought
|
||
|
to him. Later she was bound and placed in the compartment
|
||
|
with Dejah Thoris and myself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The new captive was a very beautiful girl. She told
|
||
|
Dejah Thoris that many years ago she had taken the voluntary
|
||
|
pilgrimage from the court of her father, the Jeddak of Ptarth.
|
||
|
She was Thuvia, the Princess of Ptarth. And then she asked
|
||
|
Dejah Thoris who she might be, and when she heard she
|
||
|
fell upon her knees and kissed Dejah Thoris' fettered hands,
|
||
|
and told her that that very morning she had been with John
|
||
|
Carter, Prince of Helium, and Carthoris, her son.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Dejah Thoris could not believe her at first, but finally
|
||
|
when the girl had narrated all the strange adventures that
|
||
|
had befallen her since she had met John Carter, and told her
|
||
|
of the things John Carter, and Carthoris, and Xodar had
|
||
|
narrated of their adventures in the Land of the First Born,
|
||
|
Dejah Thoris knew that it could be none other than the
|
||
|
Prince of Helium; 'For who,' she said, 'upon all Barsoom
|
||
|
other than John Carter could have done the deeds you tell of.'
|
||
|
And when Thuvia told Dejah Thoris of her love for John
|
||
|
Carter, and his loyalty and devotion to the Princess of his
|
||
|
choice, Dejah Thoris broke down and wept--cursing Zat
|
||
|
Arras and the cruel fate that had driven her from Helium
|
||
|
but a few brief days before the return of her beloved lord.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"'I do not blame you for loving him, Thuvia,' she said;
|
||
|
'and that your affection for him is pure and sincere I can
|
||
|
well believe from the candour of your avowal of it to me.'
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The fleet continued north nearly to Helium, but last night
|
||
|
they evidently realized that John Carter had indeed escaped
|
||
|
them and so they turned toward the south once more.
|
||
|
Shortly thereafter a guard entered our compartment and
|
||
|
dragged me to the deck.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"'There is no place in the Land of the First Born for a
|
||
|
green one,' he said, and with that he gave me a terrific
|
||
|
shove that carried me toppling from the deck of the battleship.
|
||
|
Evidently this seemed to him the easiest way of ridding
|
||
|
the vessel of my presence and killing me at the same time.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But a kind fate intervened, and by a miracle I escaped
|
||
|
with but slight bruises. The ship was moving slowly at the
|
||
|
time, and as I lunged overboard into the darkness beneath I
|
||
|
shuddered at the awful plunge I thought awaited me, for all
|
||
|
day the fleet had sailed thousands of feet above the ground;
|
||
|
but to my utter surprise I struck upon a soft mass of
|
||
|
vegetation not twenty feet from the deck of the ship.
|
||
|
In fact, the keel of the vessel must have been grazing
|
||
|
the surface of the ground at the time.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I lay all night where I had fallen and the next morning
|
||
|
brought an explanation of the fortunate coincidence that had
|
||
|
saved me from a terrible death. As the sun rose I saw a vast
|
||
|
panorama of sea bottom and distant hills lying far below me.
|
||
|
I was upon the highest peak of a lofty range. The fleet in
|
||
|
the darkness of the preceding night had barely grazed the
|
||
|
crest of the hills, and in the brief span that they hovered
|
||
|
close to the surface the black guard had pitched me, as he
|
||
|
supposed, to my death.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A few miles west of me was a great waterway. When I
|
||
|
reached it I found to my delight that it belonged to Helium.
|
||
|
Here a thoat was procured for me--the rest you know."
|
||
|
|
||
|
For many minutes none spoke. Dejah Thoris in the clutches
|
||
|
of the First Born! I shuddered at the thought, but of a
|
||
|
sudden the old fire of unconquerable self-confidence surged
|
||
|
through me. I sprang to my feet, and with back-thrown
|
||
|
shoulders and upraised sword took a solemn vow to reach,
|
||
|
rescue, and revenge my Princess.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A hundred swords leaped from a hundred scabbards, and a
|
||
|
hundred fighting-men sprang to the table-top and pledged
|
||
|
me their lives and fortunes to the expedition. Already my
|
||
|
plans were formulated. I thanked each loyal friend, and leaving
|
||
|
Carthoris to entertain them, withdrew to my own audience chamber
|
||
|
with Kantos Kan, Tars Tarkas, Xodar, and Hor Vastus.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Here we discussed the details of our expedition until long
|
||
|
after dark. Xodar was positive that Issus would choose both
|
||
|
Dejah Thoris and Thuvia to serve her for a year.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"For that length of time at least they will be comparatively safe,"
|
||
|
he said, "and we will at least know where to look for them."
|
||
|
|
||
|
In the matter of equipping a fleet to enter Omean the details
|
||
|
were left to Kantos Kan and Xodar. The former agreed to take
|
||
|
such vessels as we required into dock as rapidly as possible,
|
||
|
where Xodar would direct their equipment with water propellers.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For many years the black had been in charge of the
|
||
|
refitting of captured battleships that they might navigate
|
||
|
Omean, and so was familiar with the construction of the
|
||
|
propellers, housings, and the auxiliary gearing required.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was estimated that it would require six months to complete
|
||
|
our preparations in view of the fact that the utmost secrecy
|
||
|
must be maintained to keep the project from the ears of Zat Arras.
|
||
|
Kantos Kan was confident now that the man's ambitions were fully
|
||
|
aroused and that nothing short of the title of Jeddak of Helium
|
||
|
would satisfy him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I doubt," he said, "if he would even welcome Dejah Thoris'
|
||
|
return, for it would mean another nearer the throne than he.
|
||
|
With you and Carthoris out of the way there would be little
|
||
|
to prevent him from assuming the title of Jeddak, and you may
|
||
|
rest assured that so long as he is supreme here there is no
|
||
|
safety for either of you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There is a way," cried Hor Vastus, "to thwart him effectually
|
||
|
and for ever."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He smiled.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I shall whisper it here, but some day I shall stand upon
|
||
|
the dome of the Temple of Reward and shout it to cheering
|
||
|
multitudes below."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What do you mean?" asked Kantos Kan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"John Carter, Jeddak of Helium," said Hor Vastus in a low voice.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The eyes of my companions lighted, and grim smiles of
|
||
|
pleasure and anticipation overspread their faces, as each eye
|
||
|
turned toward me questioningly. But I shook my head.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, my friends," I said, smiling, "I thank you, but it
|
||
|
cannot be. Not yet, at least. When we know that Tardos Mors
|
||
|
and Mors Kajak are gone to return no more; if I be here,
|
||
|
then I shall join you all to see that the people of Helium
|
||
|
are permitted to choose fairly their next Jeddak. Whom they
|
||
|
choose may count upon the loyalty of my sword, nor shall I
|
||
|
seek the honour for myself. Until then Tardos Mors is Jeddak
|
||
|
of Helium, and Zat Arras is his representative."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"As you will, John Carter," said Hor Vastus, "but--
|
||
|
What was that?" he whispered, pointing toward the window
|
||
|
overlooking the gardens.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The words were scarce out of his mouth ere he had sprung
|
||
|
to the balcony without.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There he goes!" he cried excitedly. "The guards! Below there!
|
||
|
The guards!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
We were close behind him, and all saw the figure of a man
|
||
|
run quickly across a little piece of sward and disappear in the
|
||
|
shrubbery beyond.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He was on the balcony when I first saw him," cried Hor Vastus.
|
||
|
"Quick! Let us follow him!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Together we ran to the gardens, but even though we scoured the
|
||
|
grounds with the entire guard for hours, no trace could we find
|
||
|
of the night marauder.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What do you make of it, Kantos Kan?" asked Tars Tarkas.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A spy sent by Zat Arras," he replied. "It was ever his way."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He will have something interesting to report to his master then,"
|
||
|
laughed Hor Vastus.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I hope he heard only our references to a new Jeddak," I
|
||
|
said. "If he overheard our plans to rescue Dejah Thoris, it
|
||
|
will mean civil war, for he will attempt to thwart us, and
|
||
|
in that I will not be thwarted. There would I turn against
|
||
|
Tardos Mors himself, were it necessary. If it throws all Helium
|
||
|
into a bloody conflict, I shall go on with these plans to save
|
||
|
my Princess. Nothing shall stay me now short of death, and should
|
||
|
I die, my friends, will you take oath to prosecute the search for
|
||
|
her and bring her back in safety to her grandfather's court?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Upon the hilt of his sword each of them swore to do as I had asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was agreed that the battleships that were to be remodelled
|
||
|
should be ordered to Hastor, another Heliumetic city, far to
|
||
|
the south-west. Kantos Kan thought that the docks there,
|
||
|
in addition to their regular work, would accommodate at
|
||
|
least six battleships at a time. As he was commander-in-
|
||
|
chief of the navy, it would be a simple matter for him to
|
||
|
order the vessels there as they could be handled, and thereafter
|
||
|
keep the remodelled fleet in remote parts of the empire until
|
||
|
we should be ready to assemble it for the dash upon Omean.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was late that night before our conference broke up,
|
||
|
but each man there had his particular duties outlined, and
|
||
|
the details of the entire plan had been mapped out.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Kantos Kan and Xodar were to attend to the remodelling
|
||
|
of the ships. Tars Tarkas was to get into communication
|
||
|
with Thark and learn the sentiments of his people toward his
|
||
|
return from Dor. If favourable, he was to repair immediately
|
||
|
to Thark and devote his time to the assembling of a great horde
|
||
|
of green warriors whom it was our plan to send in transports
|
||
|
directly to the Valley Dor and the Temple of Issus, while the
|
||
|
fleet entered Omean and destroyed the vessels of the First Born.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Upon Hor Vastus devolved the delicate mission of organising
|
||
|
a secret force of fighting-men sworn to follow John Carter
|
||
|
wherever he might lead. As we estimated that it would require
|
||
|
over a million men to man the thousand great battleships
|
||
|
we intended to use on Omean and the transports for the green
|
||
|
men as well as the ships that were to convoy the transports,
|
||
|
it was no trifling job that Hor Vastus had before him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
After they had left I bid Carthoris good-night, for I was very
|
||
|
tired, and going to my own apartments, bathed and lay down
|
||
|
upon my sleeping silks and furs for the first good night's
|
||
|
sleep I had had an opportunity to look forward to since
|
||
|
I had returned to Barsoom. But even now I was to be disappointed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
How long I slept I do not know. When I awoke suddenly
|
||
|
it was to find a half-dozen powerful men upon me, a gag
|
||
|
already in my mouth, and a moment later my arms and legs
|
||
|
securely bound. So quickly had they worked and to such
|
||
|
good purpose, that I was utterly beyond the power to resist
|
||
|
them by the time I was fully awake.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Never a word spoke they, and the gag effectually prevented
|
||
|
me speaking. Silently they lifted me and bore me toward
|
||
|
the door of my chamber. As they passed the window through
|
||
|
which the farther moon was casting its brilliant beams, I saw
|
||
|
that each of the party had his face swathed in layers of silk--
|
||
|
I could not recognize one of them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When they had come into the corridor with me, they turned
|
||
|
toward a secret panel in the wall which led to the passage
|
||
|
that terminated in the pits beneath the palace. That any
|
||
|
knew of this panel outside my own household, I was doubtful.
|
||
|
Yet the leader of the band did not hesitate a moment.
|
||
|
He stepped directly to the panel, touched the concealed
|
||
|
button, and as the door swung open he stood aside while
|
||
|
his companions entered with me. Then he closed the panel
|
||
|
behind him and followed us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Down through the passageways to the pits we went. The leader
|
||
|
rapped upon it with the hilt of his sword--three quick, sharp
|
||
|
blows, a pause, then three more, another pause, and then two.
|
||
|
A second later the wall swung in, and I was pushed within a
|
||
|
brilliantly lighted chamber in which sat three richly trapped men.
|
||
|
|
||
|
One of them turned toward me with a sardonic smile upon his thin,
|
||
|
cruel lips--it was Zat Arras.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XIX
|
||
|
|
||
|
BLACK DESPAIR
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah," said Zat Arras, "to what kindly circumstance am I
|
||
|
indebted for the pleasure of this unexpected visit from the
|
||
|
Prince of Helium?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
While he was speaking, one of my guards had removed the
|
||
|
gag from my mouth, but I made no reply to Zat Arras:
|
||
|
simply standing there in silence with level gaze fixed upon
|
||
|
the Jed of Zodanga. And I doubt not that my expression
|
||
|
was coloured by the contempt I felt for the man.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The eyes of those within the chamber were fixed first upon
|
||
|
me and then upon Zat Arras, until finally a flush of anger
|
||
|
crept slowly over his face.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You may go," he said to those who had brought me,
|
||
|
and when only his two companions and ourselves were left
|
||
|
in the chamber, he spoke to me again in a voice of ice--
|
||
|
very slowly and deliberately, with many pauses, as though
|
||
|
he would choose his words cautiously.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"John Carter," he said, "by the edict of custom, by the law
|
||
|
of our religion, and by the verdict of an impartial court,
|
||
|
you are condemned to die. The people cannot save you--I
|
||
|
alone may accomplish that. You are absolutely in my power
|
||
|
to do with as I wish--I may kill you, or I may free you,
|
||
|
and should I elect to kill you, none would be the wiser.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Should you go free in Helium for a year, in accordance with
|
||
|
the conditions of your reprieve, there is little fear that
|
||
|
the people would ever insist upon the execution of the sentence
|
||
|
imposed upon you.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You may go free within two minutes, upon one condition.
|
||
|
Tardos Mors will never return to Helium. Neither will
|
||
|
Mors Kajak, nor Dejah Thoris. Helium must select a new
|
||
|
Jeddak within the year. Zat Arras would be Jeddak of Helium.
|
||
|
Say that you will espouse my cause. This is the price of
|
||
|
your freedom. I am done."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I knew it was within the scope of Zat Arras' cruel heart
|
||
|
to destroy me, and if I were dead I could see little reason
|
||
|
to doubt that he might easily become Jeddak of Helium. Free,
|
||
|
I could prosecute the search for Dejah Thoris. Were I dead,
|
||
|
my brave comrades might not be able to carry out our plans.
|
||
|
So, by refusing to accede to his request, it was quite
|
||
|
probable that not only would I not prevent him from
|
||
|
becoming Jeddak of Helium, but that I would be the
|
||
|
means of sealing Dejah Thoris' fate--of consigning her,
|
||
|
through my refusal, to the horrors of the arena of Issus.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For a moment I was perplexed, but for a moment only.
|
||
|
The proud daughter of a thousand Jeddaks would choose
|
||
|
death to a dishonorable alliance such as this, nor could
|
||
|
John Carter do less for Helium than his Princess would do.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then I turned to Zat Arras.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There can be no alliance," I said, "between a traitor to
|
||
|
Helium and a prince of the House of Tardos Mors. I
|
||
|
do not believe, Zat Arras, that the great Jeddak is dead."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Zat Arras shrugged his shoulders.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It will not be long, John Carter," he said, "that your
|
||
|
opinions will be of interest even to yourself, so make the best
|
||
|
of them while you can. Zat Arras will permit you in due
|
||
|
time to reflect further upon the magnanimous offer he has
|
||
|
made you. Into the silence and darkness of the pits you
|
||
|
will enter upon your reflection this night with the knowledge
|
||
|
that should you fail within a reasonable time to agree to the
|
||
|
alternative which has been offered you, never shall you emerge
|
||
|
from the darkness and the silence again. Nor shall you know
|
||
|
at what minute the hand will reach out through the darkness
|
||
|
and the silence with the keen dagger that shall rob you
|
||
|
of your last chance to win again the warmth and the freedom
|
||
|
and joyousness of the outer world."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Zat Arras clapped his hands as he ceased speaking.
|
||
|
The guards returned.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Zat Arras waved his hand in my direction.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"To the pits," he said. That was all. Four men accompanied
|
||
|
me from the chamber, and with a radium hand-light to illumine
|
||
|
the way, escorted me through seemingly interminable tunnels,
|
||
|
down, ever down beneath the city of Helium.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At length they halted within a fair-sized chamber. There
|
||
|
were rings set in the rocky walls. To them chains were
|
||
|
fastened, and at the ends of many of the chains were human
|
||
|
skeletons. One of these they kicked aside, and, unlocking the
|
||
|
huge padlock that had held a chain about what had once
|
||
|
been a human ankle, they snapped the iron band about my
|
||
|
own leg. Then they left me, taking the light with them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Utter darkness prevailed. For a few minutes I could hear
|
||
|
the clanking of accoutrements, but even this grew fainter
|
||
|
and fainter, until at last the silence was as complete as
|
||
|
the darkness. I was alone with my gruesome companions--with
|
||
|
the bones of dead men whose fate was likely but the index
|
||
|
of my own.
|
||
|
|
||
|
How long I stood listening in the darkness I do not know,
|
||
|
but the silence was unbroken, and at last I sunk to the hard
|
||
|
floor of my prison, where, leaning my head against the stony
|
||
|
wall, I slept.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It must have been several hours later that I awakened
|
||
|
to find a young man standing before me. In one hand he
|
||
|
bore a light, in the other a receptacle containing a gruel-like
|
||
|
mixture--the common prison fare of Barsoom.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Zat Arras sends you greetings," said the young man, "and
|
||
|
commands me to inform you that though he is fully advised
|
||
|
of the plot to make you Jeddak of Helium, he is, however, not
|
||
|
inclined to withdraw the offer which he has made you.
|
||
|
To gain your freedom you have but to request me to advise
|
||
|
Zat Arras that you accept the terms of his proposition."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I but shook my head. The youth said no more, and, after
|
||
|
placing the food upon the floor at my side, returned up the
|
||
|
corridor, taking the light with him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Twice a day for many days this youth came to my cell
|
||
|
with food, and ever the same greetings from Zat Arras.
|
||
|
For a long time I tried to engage him in conversation
|
||
|
upon other matters, but he would not talk, and so,
|
||
|
at length, I desisted.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For months I sought to devise methods to inform Carthoris
|
||
|
of my whereabouts. For months I scraped and scraped
|
||
|
upon a single link of the massive chain which held me,
|
||
|
hoping eventually to wear it through, that I might follow
|
||
|
the youth back through the winding tunnels to a point where
|
||
|
I could make a break for liberty.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was beside myself with anxiety for knowledge of the
|
||
|
progress of the expedition which was to rescue Dejah Thoris.
|
||
|
I felt that Carthoris would not let the matter drop, were he
|
||
|
free to act, but in so far as I knew, he also might be a
|
||
|
prisoner in Zat Arras' pits.
|
||
|
|
||
|
That Zat Arras' spy had overheard our conversation relative
|
||
|
to the selection of a new Jeddak, I knew, and scarcely
|
||
|
a half-dozen minutes prior we had discussed the details
|
||
|
of the plan to rescue Dejah Thoris. The chances were that
|
||
|
that matter, too, was well known to him. Carthoris, Kantos
|
||
|
Kan, Tars Tarkas, Hor Vastus, and Xodar might even now
|
||
|
be the victims of Zat Arras' assassins, or else his prisoners.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I determined to make at least one more effort to learn
|
||
|
something, and to this end I adopted strategy when next
|
||
|
the youth came to my cell. I had noticed that he was a
|
||
|
handsome fellow, about the size and age of Carthoris.
|
||
|
And I had also noticed that his shabby trappings but illy
|
||
|
comported with his dignified and noble bearing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was with these observations as a basis that I opened
|
||
|
my negotiations with him upon his next subsequent visit.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You have been very kind to me during my imprisonment here,"
|
||
|
I said to him, "and as I feel that I have at best but a
|
||
|
very short time to live, I wish, ere it is too late,
|
||
|
to furnish substantial testimony of my appreciation of all
|
||
|
that you have done to render my imprisonment bearable.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Promptly you have brought my food each day, seeing that
|
||
|
it was pure and of sufficient quantity. Never by word
|
||
|
or deed have you attempted to take advantage of my
|
||
|
defenceless condition to insult or torture me. You have
|
||
|
been uniformly courteous and considerate--it is this more
|
||
|
than any other thing which prompts my feeling of gratitude
|
||
|
and my desire to give you some slight token of it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In the guard-room of my palace are many fine trappings.
|
||
|
Go thou there and select the harness which most pleases you
|
||
|
--it shall be yours. All I ask is that you wear it, that I
|
||
|
may know that my wish has been realized. Tell me that you
|
||
|
will do it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The boy's eyes had lighted with pleasure as I spoke, and I
|
||
|
saw him glance from his rusty trappings to the magnificence
|
||
|
of my own. For a moment he stood in thought before he
|
||
|
spoke, and for that moment my heart fairly ceased beating
|
||
|
--so much for me there was which hung upon the substance
|
||
|
of his answer.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And I went to the palace of the Prince of Helium with any
|
||
|
such demand, they would laugh at me and, into the bargain,
|
||
|
would more than likely throw me headforemost into the avenue.
|
||
|
No, it cannot be, though I thank you for the offer. Why,
|
||
|
if Zat Arras even dreamed that I contemplated such a thing
|
||
|
he would have my heart cut out of me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There can be no harm in it, my boy," I urged. "By night
|
||
|
you may go to my palace with a note from me to Carthoris,
|
||
|
my son. You may read the note before you deliver it,
|
||
|
that you may know that it contains nothing harmful to
|
||
|
Zat Arras. My son will be discreet, and so none but us
|
||
|
three need know. It is very simple, and such a harmless
|
||
|
act that it could be condemned by no one."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Again he stood silently in deep thought.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And there is a jewelled short-sword which I took from the
|
||
|
body of a northern Jeddak. When you get the harness, see
|
||
|
that Carthoris gives you that also. With it and the harness
|
||
|
which you may select there will be no more handsomely
|
||
|
accoutred warrior in all Zodanga.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Bring writing materials when you come next to my cell,
|
||
|
and within a few hours we shall see you garbed in a style
|
||
|
befitting your birth and carriage."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Still in thought, and without speaking, he turned and
|
||
|
left me. I could not guess what his decision might be, and
|
||
|
for hours I sat fretting over the outcome of the matter.
|
||
|
|
||
|
If he accepted a message to Carthoris it would mean to me
|
||
|
that Carthoris still lived and was free. If the youth returned
|
||
|
wearing the harness and the sword, I would know that Carthoris
|
||
|
had received my note and that he knew that I still lived.
|
||
|
That the bearer of the note was a Zodangan would be sufficient
|
||
|
to explain to Carthoris that I was a prisoner of Zat Arras.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was with feelings of excited expectancy which I could scarce
|
||
|
hide that I heard the youth's approach upon the occasion of
|
||
|
his next regular visit. I did not speak beyond my accustomed
|
||
|
greeting of him. As he placed the food upon the floor by my
|
||
|
side he also deposited writing materials at the same time.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My heart fairly bounded for joy. I had won my point. For
|
||
|
a moment I looked at the materials in feigned surprise, but
|
||
|
soon I permitted an expression of dawning comprehension to
|
||
|
come into my face, and then, picking them up, I penned
|
||
|
a brief order to Carthoris to deliver to Parthak a harness of his
|
||
|
selection and the short-sword which I described. That was all.
|
||
|
But it meant everything to me and to Carthoris.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I laid the note open upon the floor. Parthak picked it up and,
|
||
|
without a word, left me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As nearly as I could estimate, I had at this time been
|
||
|
in the pits for three hundred days. If anything was to be done
|
||
|
to save Dejah Thoris it must be done quickly, for, were she
|
||
|
not already dead, her end must soon come, since those
|
||
|
whom Issus chose lived but a single year.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The next time I heard approaching footsteps I could scarce
|
||
|
await to see if Parthak wore the harness and the sword, but
|
||
|
judge, if you can, my chagrin and disappointment when I
|
||
|
saw that he who bore my food was not Parthak.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What has become of Parthak?" I asked, but the fellow
|
||
|
would not answer, and as soon as he had deposited my food,
|
||
|
turned and retraced his steps to the world above.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Days came and went, and still my new jailer continued
|
||
|
his duties, nor would he ever speak a word to me, either in
|
||
|
reply to the simplest question or of his own initiative.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I could only speculate on the cause of Parthak's removal,
|
||
|
but that it was connected in some way directly with the note
|
||
|
I had given him was most apparent to me. After all my
|
||
|
rejoicing, I was no better off than before, for now I did not
|
||
|
even know that Carthoris lived, for if Parthak had wished to
|
||
|
raise himself in the estimation of Zat Arras he would have
|
||
|
permitted me to go on precisely as I did, so that he could
|
||
|
carry my note to his master, in proof of his own loyalty
|
||
|
and devotion.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Thirty days had passed since I had given the youth the
|
||
|
note. Three hundred and thirty days had passed since my
|
||
|
incarceration. As closely as I could figure, there remained a
|
||
|
bare thirty days ere Dejah Thoris would be ordered to
|
||
|
the arena for the rites of Issus.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As the terrible picture forced itself vividly across my
|
||
|
imagination, I buried my face in my arms, and only with the
|
||
|
greatest difficulty was it that I repressed the tears that welled
|
||
|
to my eyes despite my every effort. To think of that beautiful
|
||
|
creature torn and rended by the cruel fangs of the hideous
|
||
|
white apes! It was unthinkable. Such a horrid fact could
|
||
|
not be; and yet my reason told me that within thirty days
|
||
|
my incomparable Princess would be fought over in the
|
||
|
arena of the First Born by those very wild beasts; that her
|
||
|
bleeding corpse would be dragged through the dirt and the dust,
|
||
|
until at last a part of it would be rescued to be served as
|
||
|
food upon the tables of the black nobles.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I think that I should have gone crazy but for the sound
|
||
|
of my approaching jailer. It distracted my attention from
|
||
|
the terrible thoughts that had been occupying my entire mind.
|
||
|
Now a new and grim determination came to me. I would make
|
||
|
one super-human effort to escape. Kill my jailer by a ruse,
|
||
|
and trust to fate to lead me to the outer world in safety.
|
||
|
|
||
|
With the thought came instant action. I threw myself upon
|
||
|
the floor of my cell close by the wall, in a strained and
|
||
|
distorted posture, as though I were dead after a struggle
|
||
|
or convulsions. When he should stoop over me I had but to
|
||
|
grasp his throat with one hand and strike him a terrific blow
|
||
|
with the slack of my chain, which I gripped firmly in my
|
||
|
right hand for the purpose.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Nearer and nearer came the doomed man. Now I heard
|
||
|
him halt before me. There was a muttered exclamation, and
|
||
|
then a step as he came to my side. I felt him kneel beside me.
|
||
|
My grip tightened upon the chain. He leaned close to me.
|
||
|
I must open my eyes to find his throat, grasp it, and strike
|
||
|
one mighty final blow all at the same instant.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The thing worked just as I had planned. So brief was the
|
||
|
interval between the opening of my eyes and the fall of the
|
||
|
chain that I could not check it, though it that minute
|
||
|
interval I recognized the face so close to mine as that
|
||
|
of my son, Carthoris.
|
||
|
|
||
|
God! What cruel and malign fate had worked to such a
|
||
|
frightful end! What devious chain of circumstances had led
|
||
|
my boy to my side at this one particular minute of our lives
|
||
|
when I could strike him down and kill him, in ignorance
|
||
|
of his identity! A benign though tardy Providence blurred my
|
||
|
vision and my mind as I sank into unconsciousness across the
|
||
|
lifeless body of my only son.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When I regained consciousness it was to feel a cool, firm
|
||
|
hand pressed upon my forehead. For an instant I did not
|
||
|
open my eyes. I was endeavouring to gather the loose ends
|
||
|
of many thoughts and memories which flitted elusively
|
||
|
through my tired and overwrought brain.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At length came the cruel recollection of the thing that I
|
||
|
had done in my last conscious act, and then I dared not
|
||
|
to open my eyes for fear of what I should see lying beside
|
||
|
me. I wondered who it could be who ministered to me.
|
||
|
Carthoris must have had a companion whom I had not seen.
|
||
|
Well, I must face the inevitable some time, so why not now,
|
||
|
and with a sigh I opened my eyes.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Leaning over me was Carthoris, a great bruise upon his
|
||
|
forehead where the chain had struck, but alive, thank
|
||
|
God, alive! There was no one with him. Reaching out my
|
||
|
arms, I took my boy within them, and if ever there arose
|
||
|
from any planet a fervent prayer of gratitude, it was there
|
||
|
beneath the crust of dying Mars as I thanked the Eternal
|
||
|
Mystery for my son's life.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The brief instant in which I had seen and recognized
|
||
|
Carthoris before the chain fell must have been ample to
|
||
|
check the force of the blow. He told me that he had
|
||
|
lain unconscious for a time--how long he did not know.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How came you here at all?" I asked, mystified that he
|
||
|
had found me without a guide.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It was by your wit in apprising me of your existence and
|
||
|
imprisonment through the youth, Parthak. Until he came for
|
||
|
his harness and his sword, we had thought you dead. When
|
||
|
I had read your note I did as you had bid, giving Parthak his
|
||
|
choice of the harnesses in the guardroom, and later bringing
|
||
|
the jewelled short-sword to him; but the minute that I had
|
||
|
fulfilled the promise you evidently had made him, my
|
||
|
obligation to him ceased. Then I commenced to question him,
|
||
|
but he would give me no information as to your whereabouts.
|
||
|
He was intensely loyal to Zat Arras.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Finally I gave him a fair choice between freedom and
|
||
|
the pits beneath the palace--the price of freedom to be full
|
||
|
information as to where you were imprisoned and directions
|
||
|
which would lead us to you; but still he maintained his
|
||
|
stubborn partisanship. Despairing, I had him removed to
|
||
|
the pits, where he still is.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No threats of torture or death, no bribes, however fabulous,
|
||
|
would move him. His only reply to all our importunities
|
||
|
was that whenever Parthak died, were it to-morrow or a
|
||
|
thousand years hence, no man could truly say, 'A traitor is
|
||
|
gone to his deserts.'
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Finally, Xodar, who is a fiend for subtle craftiness,
|
||
|
evolved a plan whereby we might worm the information
|
||
|
from him. And so I caused Hor Vastus to be harnessed in
|
||
|
the metal of a Zodangan soldier and chained in Parthak's
|
||
|
cell beside him. For fifteen days the noble Hor Vastus has
|
||
|
languished in the darkness of the pits, but not in vain.
|
||
|
Little by little he won the confidence and friendship of the
|
||
|
Zodangan, until only to-day Parthak, thinking that he was
|
||
|
speaking not only to a countryman, but to a dear friend,
|
||
|
revealed that Hor Vastus the exact cell in which you lay.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It took me but a short time to locate the plans of the pits
|
||
|
of Helium among thy official papers. To come to you, though,
|
||
|
was a trifle more difficult matter. As you know, while all
|
||
|
the pits beneath the city are connected, there are but single
|
||
|
entrances from those beneath each section and its neighbour,
|
||
|
and that at the upper level just underneath the ground.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Of course, these openings which lead from contiguous pits to
|
||
|
those beneath government buildings are always guarded, and so,
|
||
|
while I easily came to the entrance to the pits beneath the
|
||
|
palace which Zat Arras is occupying, I found there a Zodangan
|
||
|
soldier on guard. There I left him when I had gone by,
|
||
|
but his soul was no longer with him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And here I am, just in time to be nearly killed by you,"
|
||
|
he ended, laughing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As he talked Carthoris had been working at the lock which
|
||
|
held my fetters, and now, with an exclamation of pleasure,
|
||
|
he dropped the end of the chain to the floor, and I stood up
|
||
|
once more, freed from the galling irons I had chafed in for
|
||
|
almost a year.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He had brought a long-sword and a dagger for me, and
|
||
|
thus armed we set out upon the return journey to my palace.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At the point where we left the pits of Zat Arras we found
|
||
|
the body of the guard Carthoris had slain. It had not yet been
|
||
|
discovered, and, in order to still further delay search and
|
||
|
mystify the jed's people, we carried the body with us for a
|
||
|
short distance, hiding it in a tiny cell off the main corridor
|
||
|
of the pits beneath an adjoining estate.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Some half-hour later we came to the pits beneath our own
|
||
|
palace, and soon thereafter emerged into the audience chamber
|
||
|
itself, where we found Kantos Kan, Tars Tarkas, Hor Vastus,
|
||
|
and Xodar awaiting us most impatiently.
|
||
|
|
||
|
No time was lost in fruitless recounting of my imprisonment.
|
||
|
What I desired to know was how well the plans we had laid
|
||
|
nearly a year ago and had been carried out.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It has taken much longer than we had expected," replied
|
||
|
Kantos Kan. "The fact that we were compelled to maintain
|
||
|
utter secrecy has handicapped us terribly. Zat Arras' spies
|
||
|
are everywhere. Yet, to the best of my knowledge, no word
|
||
|
of our real plans has reached the villain's ear.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"To-night there lies about the great docks at Hastor a fleet
|
||
|
of a thousand of the mightiest battleships that ever sailed
|
||
|
above Barsoom, and each equipped to navigate the air of Omean
|
||
|
and the waters of Omean itself. Upon each battleship
|
||
|
there are five ten-man cruisers, and ten five-man scouts,
|
||
|
and a hundred one-man scouts; in all, one hundred and sixteen
|
||
|
thousand craft fitted with both air and water propellers.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"At Thark lie the transports for the green warriors of Tars
|
||
|
Tarkas, nine hundred large troopships, and with them their
|
||
|
convoys. Seven days ago all was in readiness, but we waited
|
||
|
in the hope that by so doing your rescue might be encompassed
|
||
|
in time for you to command the expedition. It is well we waited,
|
||
|
my Prince."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How is it, Tars Tarkas," I asked, "that the men of Thark
|
||
|
take not the accustomed action against one who returns from
|
||
|
the bosom of Iss?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They sent a council of fifty chieftains to talk with me
|
||
|
here," replied the Thark. "We are a just people, and when I
|
||
|
had told them the entire story they were as one man in
|
||
|
agreeing that their action toward me would be guided by the
|
||
|
action of Helium toward John Carter. In the meantime, at
|
||
|
their request, I was to resume my throne as Jeddak of Thark,
|
||
|
that I might negotiate with neighboring hordes for warriors
|
||
|
to compose the land forces of the expedition. I have done
|
||
|
that which I agreed. Two hundred and fifty thousand fighting
|
||
|
men, gathered from the ice cap at the north to the ice cap at
|
||
|
the south, and representing a thousand different communities,
|
||
|
from a hundred wild and warlike hordes, fill the great city
|
||
|
of Thark to-night. They are ready to sail for the Land of
|
||
|
the First Born when I give the word and fight there until
|
||
|
I bid them stop. All they ask is the loot they take and
|
||
|
transportation to their own territories when the fighting
|
||
|
and the looting are over. I am done."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And thou, Hor Vastus," I asked, "what has been thy success?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A million veteran fighting-men from Helium's thin waterways man
|
||
|
the battleships, the transports, and the convoys," he replied.
|
||
|
"Each is sworn to loyalty and secrecy, nor were enough recruited
|
||
|
from a single district to cause suspicion."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Good!" I cried. "Each has done his duty, and now, Kantos Kan,
|
||
|
may we not repair at once to Hastor and get under way before
|
||
|
to-morrow's sun?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We should lose no time, Prince," replied Kantos Kan.
|
||
|
"Already the people of Hastor are questioning the purpose of
|
||
|
so great a fleet fully manned with fighting-men. I wonder
|
||
|
much that word of it has not before reached Zat Arras. A
|
||
|
cruiser awaits above at your own dock; let us leave at--"
|
||
|
A fusillade of shots from the palace gardens just without cut
|
||
|
short his further words.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Together we rushed to the balcony in time to see a dozen
|
||
|
members of my palace guard disappear in the shadows of
|
||
|
some distant shrubbery as in pursuit of one who fled. Directly
|
||
|
beneath us upon the scarlet sward a handful of guardsmen
|
||
|
were stooping above a still and prostrate form.
|
||
|
|
||
|
While we watched they lifted the figure in their arms and
|
||
|
at my command bore it to the audience chamber where we
|
||
|
had been in council. When they stretched the body at our
|
||
|
feet we saw that it was that of a red man in the prime of life
|
||
|
--his metal was plain, such as common soldiers wear, or
|
||
|
those who wish to conceal their identity.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Another of Zat Arras' spies," said Hor Vastus.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"So it would seem," I replied, and then to the guard:
|
||
|
"You may remove the body."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Wait!" said Xodar. "If you will, Prince, ask that a cloth
|
||
|
and a little thoat oil be brought."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I nodded to one of the soldiers, who left the chamber,
|
||
|
returning presently with the things that Xodar had requested.
|
||
|
The black kneeled beside the body and, dipping a corner of
|
||
|
the cloth in the thoat oil, rubbed for a moment on the dead
|
||
|
face before him, Then he turned to me with a smile, pointing
|
||
|
to his work. I looked and saw that where Xodar had applied
|
||
|
the thoat oil the face was white, as white as mine, and then
|
||
|
Xodar seized the black hair of the corpse and with a sudden
|
||
|
wrench tore it all away, revealing a hairless pate beneath.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Guardsmen and nobles pressed close about the silent witness
|
||
|
upon the marble floor. Many were the exclamations of
|
||
|
astonishment and questioning wonder as Xodar's acts
|
||
|
confirmed the suspicion which he had held.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A thern!" whispered Tars Tarkas.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Worse than that, I fear," replied Xodar. "But let us see."
|
||
|
|
||
|
With that he drew his dagger and cut open a locked pouch
|
||
|
which had dangled from the thern's harness, and from it
|
||
|
he brought forth a circlet of gold set with a large gem--it
|
||
|
was the mate to that which I had taken from Sator Throg.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He was a Holy Thern," said Xodar. "Fortunate indeed it
|
||
|
is for us that he did not escape."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The officer of the guard entered the chamber at this juncture.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My Prince," he said, "I have to report that this fellow's
|
||
|
companion escaped us. I think that it was with the connivance
|
||
|
of one or more of the men at the gate. I have ordered
|
||
|
them all under arrest."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Xodar handed him the thoat oil and cloth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"With this you may discover the spy among you," he said.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I at once ordered a secret search within the city, for every
|
||
|
Martian noble maintains a secret service of his own.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A half-hour later the officer of the guard came again to report.
|
||
|
This time it was to confirm our worst fears--half the guards at
|
||
|
the gate that night had been therns disguised as red men.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come!" I cried. "We must lose no time. On to Hastor at
|
||
|
once. Should the therns attempt to check us at the southern
|
||
|
verge of the ice cap it may result in the wrecking of all our
|
||
|
plans and the total destruction of the expedition."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Ten minutes later we were speeding through the night toward Hastor,
|
||
|
prepared to strike the first blow for the preservation of Dejah Thoris.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XX
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE AIR BATTLE
|
||
|
|
||
|
Two hours after leaving my palace at Helium, or about
|
||
|
midnight, Kantos Kan, Xodar, and I arrived at Hastor.
|
||
|
Carthoris, Tars Tarkas, and Hor Vastus had gone directly
|
||
|
to Thark upon another cruiser.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The transports were to get under way immediately and
|
||
|
move slowly south. The fleet of battleships would overtake
|
||
|
them on the morning of the second day.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At Hastor we found all in readiness, and so perfectly had
|
||
|
Kantos Kan planned every detail of the campaign that within
|
||
|
ten minutes of our arrival the first of the fleet had soared
|
||
|
aloft from its dock, and thereafter, at the rate of one a
|
||
|
second, the great ships floated gracefully out into the night
|
||
|
to form a long, thin line which stretched for miles toward
|
||
|
the south.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was not until after we had entered the cabin of Kantos
|
||
|
Kan that I thought to ask the date, for up to now I was
|
||
|
not positive how long I had lain in the pits of Zat Arras.
|
||
|
When Kantos Kan told me, I realized with a pang of dismay
|
||
|
that I had misreckoned the time while I lay in the utter
|
||
|
darkness of my cell. Three hundred and sixty-five
|
||
|
days had passed--it was too late to save Dejah Thoris.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The expedition was no longer one of rescue but of revenge.
|
||
|
I did not remind Kantos Kan of the terrible fact that ere
|
||
|
we could hope to enter the Temple of Issus, the Princess
|
||
|
of Helium would be no more. In so far as I knew she might
|
||
|
be already dead, for I did not know the exact date on which
|
||
|
she first viewed Issus.
|
||
|
|
||
|
What now the value of burdening my friends with my
|
||
|
added personal sorrows--they had shared quite enough of
|
||
|
them with me in the past. Hereafter I would keep my grief
|
||
|
to myself, and so I said nothing to any other of the fact
|
||
|
that we were too late. The expedition could yet do much
|
||
|
if it could but teach the people of Barsoom the facts of
|
||
|
the cruel deception that had been worked upon them for
|
||
|
countless ages, and thus save thousands each year from the
|
||
|
horrid fate that awaited them at the conclusion of the
|
||
|
voluntary pilgrimage.
|
||
|
|
||
|
If it could open to the red men the fair Valley Dor it
|
||
|
would have accomplished much, and in the Land of Lost
|
||
|
Souls between the Mountains of Otz and the ice barrier
|
||
|
were many broad acres that needed no irrigation to bear
|
||
|
rich harvests.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Here at the bottom of a dying world was the only naturally
|
||
|
productive area upon its surface. Here alone were dews
|
||
|
and rains, here alone was an open sea, here was water in
|
||
|
plenty; and all this was but the stamping ground of fierce
|
||
|
brutes and from its beauteous and fertile expanse the
|
||
|
wicked remnants of two once mighty races barred all the
|
||
|
other millions of Barsoom. Could I but succeed in once
|
||
|
breaking down the barrier of religious superstition which
|
||
|
had kept the red races from this El Dorado it would be
|
||
|
a fitting memorial to the immortal virtues of my Princess--I
|
||
|
should have again served Barsoom and Dejah Thoris' martyrdom
|
||
|
would not have been in vain.
|
||
|
|
||
|
On the morning of the second day we raised the great
|
||
|
fleet of transports and their consorts at the first flood
|
||
|
of dawn, and soon were near enough to exchange signals.
|
||
|
I may mention here that radio-aerograms are seldom if
|
||
|
ever used in war time, or for the transmission of secret
|
||
|
dispatches at any time, for as often as one nation discovers
|
||
|
a new cipher, or invents a new instrument for wireless
|
||
|
purposes its neighbours bend every effort until they are
|
||
|
able to intercept and translate the messages. For so long
|
||
|
a time has this gone on that practically every possibility
|
||
|
of wireless communication has been exhausted and no nation
|
||
|
dares transmit dispatches of importance in this way.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Tars Tarkas reported all well with the transports. The
|
||
|
battleships passed through to take an advanced position,
|
||
|
and the combined fleets moved slowly over the ice cap,
|
||
|
hugging the surface closely to prevent detection by the
|
||
|
therns whose land we were approaching.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Far in advance of all a thin line of one-man air scouts
|
||
|
protected us from surprise, and on either side they flanked
|
||
|
us, while a smaller number brought up the rear some
|
||
|
twenty miles behind the transports. In this formation we
|
||
|
had progressed toward the entrance to Omean for several
|
||
|
hours when one of our scouts returned from the front to
|
||
|
report that the cone-like summit of the entrance was in
|
||
|
sight. At almost the same instant another scout from the
|
||
|
left flank came racing toward the flagship.
|
||
|
|
||
|
His very speed bespoke the importance of his information.
|
||
|
Kantos Kan and I awaited him upon the little forward deck
|
||
|
which corresponds with the bridge of earthly battleships.
|
||
|
Scarcely had his tiny flier come to rest upon the broad
|
||
|
landing-deck of the flagship ere he was bounding up the
|
||
|
stairway to the deck where we stood.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A great fleet of battleships south-south-east, my Prince,"
|
||
|
he cried. "There must be several thousands and they are
|
||
|
bearing down directly upon us."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The thern spies were not in the palace of John Carter
|
||
|
for nothing," said Kantos Kan to me. "Your orders, Prince."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Dispatch ten battleships to guard the entrance to Omean,
|
||
|
with orders to let no hostile enter or leave the shaft.
|
||
|
That will bottle up the great fleet of the First Born.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Form the balance of the battleships into a great V with the
|
||
|
apex pointing directly south-south-east. Order the transports,
|
||
|
surrounded by their convoys, to follow closely in the wake of
|
||
|
the battleships until the point of the V has entered the
|
||
|
enemies' line, then the V must open outward at the apex,
|
||
|
the battleships of each leg engage the enemy fiercely and
|
||
|
drive him back to form a lane through his line into which the
|
||
|
transports with their convoys must race at top speed that they
|
||
|
may gain a position above the temples and gardens of the therns.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Here let them land and teach the Holy Therns such a
|
||
|
lesson in ferocious warfare as they will not forget for
|
||
|
countless ages. It had not been my intention to be
|
||
|
distracted from the main issue of the campaign, but we must
|
||
|
settle this attack with the therns once and for all, or there
|
||
|
will be no peace for us while our fleet remains near Dor,
|
||
|
and our chances of ever returning to the outer world will
|
||
|
be greatly minimized."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Kantos Kan saluted and turned to deliver my instructions
|
||
|
to his waiting aides. In an incredibly short space of time
|
||
|
the formation of the battleships changed in accordance with
|
||
|
my commands, the ten that were to guard the way to
|
||
|
Omean were speeding toward their destination, and the
|
||
|
troopships and convoys were closing up in preparation for
|
||
|
the spurt through the lane.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The order of full speed ahead was given, the fleet sprang
|
||
|
through the air like coursing greyhounds, and in another
|
||
|
moment the ships of the enemy were in full view. They
|
||
|
formed a ragged line as far as the eye could reach in
|
||
|
either direction and about three ships deep. So sudden was
|
||
|
our onslaught that they had no time to prepare for it. It was
|
||
|
as unexpected as lightning from a clear sky.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Every phase of my plan worked splendidly. Our huge
|
||
|
ships mowed their way entirely through the line of thern
|
||
|
battlecraft; then the V opened up and a broad lane appeared
|
||
|
through which the transports leaped toward the temples of
|
||
|
the therns which could now be plainly seen glistening in the
|
||
|
sunlight. By the time the therns had rallied from the attack a
|
||
|
hundred thousand green warriors were already pouring
|
||
|
through their courts and gardens, while a hundred and fifty
|
||
|
thousand others leaned from low swinging transports to direct
|
||
|
their almost uncanny marksmanship upon the thern soldiery
|
||
|
that manned the ramparts, or attempted to defend the temples.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now the two great fleets closed in a titanic struggle
|
||
|
far above the fiendish din of battle in the gorgeous gardens
|
||
|
of the therns. Slowly the two lines of Helium's battleships
|
||
|
joined their ends, and then commenced the circling within
|
||
|
the line of the enemy which is so marked a characteristic of
|
||
|
Barsoomian naval warfare.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Around and around in each other's tracks moved the ships under
|
||
|
Kantos Kan, until at length they formed nearly a perfect circle.
|
||
|
By this time they were moving at high speed so that they presented
|
||
|
a difficult target for the enemy. Broadside after broadside they
|
||
|
delivered as each vessel came in line with the ships of the therns.
|
||
|
The latter attempted to rush in and break up the formation, but it
|
||
|
was like stopping a buzz saw with the bare hand.
|
||
|
|
||
|
From my position on the deck beside Kantos Kan I saw
|
||
|
ship after ship of the enemy take the awful, sickening dive
|
||
|
which proclaims its total destruction. Slowly we manoeuvered
|
||
|
our circle of death until we hung above the gardens where
|
||
|
our green warriors were engaged. The order was passed down
|
||
|
for them to embark. Then they rose slowly to a position within
|
||
|
the centre of the circle.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In the meantime the therns' fire had practically ceased.
|
||
|
They had had enough of us and were only too glad to let
|
||
|
us go on our way in peace. But our escape was not to be
|
||
|
encompassed with such ease, for scarcely had we gotten
|
||
|
under way once more in the direction of the entrance to
|
||
|
Omean than we saw far to the north a great black line topping
|
||
|
the horizon. It could be nothing other than a fleet of war.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Whose or whither bound, we could not even conjecture.
|
||
|
When they had come close enough to make us out at all,
|
||
|
Kantos Kan's operator received a radio-aerogram, which
|
||
|
he immediately handed to my companion. He read the thing
|
||
|
and handed it to me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Kantos Kan:" it read. "Surrender, in the name of the
|
||
|
Jeddak of Helium, for you cannot escape," and it was
|
||
|
signed, "Zat Arras."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The therns must have caught and translated the message
|
||
|
almost as soon as did we, for they immediately renewed
|
||
|
hostilities when they realized that we were soon to be set
|
||
|
upon by other enemies.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Before Zat Arras had approached near enough to fire a
|
||
|
shot we were again hotly engaged with the thern fleet, and
|
||
|
as soon as he drew near he too commenced to pour a
|
||
|
terrific fusillade of heavy shot into us. Ship after ship reeled
|
||
|
and staggered into uselessness beneath the pitiless fire that
|
||
|
we were undergoing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The thing could not last much longer. I ordered the transports
|
||
|
to descend again into the gardens of the therns.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Wreak your vengeance to the utmost," was my message
|
||
|
to the green allies, "for by night there will be none left to
|
||
|
avenge your wrongs."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Presently I saw the ten battleships that had been ordered
|
||
|
to hold the shaft of Omean. They were returning at full
|
||
|
speed, firing their stern batteries almost continuously. There
|
||
|
could be but one explanation. They were being pursued by
|
||
|
another hostile fleet. Well, the situation could be no worse.
|
||
|
The expedition already was doomed. No man that had
|
||
|
embarked upon it would return across that dreary ice cap.
|
||
|
How I wished that I fight face Zat Arras with my longsword
|
||
|
for just an instant before I died! It was he who had
|
||
|
caused our failure.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I watched the oncoming ten I saw their pursuers race
|
||
|
swiftly into sight. It was another great fleet; for a moment
|
||
|
I could not believe my eyes, but finally I was forced to
|
||
|
admit that the most fatal calamity had overtaken the expedition,
|
||
|
for the fleet I saw was none other than the fleet of the
|
||
|
First Born, that should have been safely bottled up in Omean.
|
||
|
What a series of misfortunes and disasters! What awful
|
||
|
fate hovered over me, that I should have been so terribly
|
||
|
thwarted at every angle of my search for my lost love!
|
||
|
Could it be possible that the curse of Issus was upon me!
|
||
|
That there was, indeed, some malign divinity in that hideous
|
||
|
carcass! I would not believe it, and, throwing back my
|
||
|
shoulders, I ran to the deck below to join my men in repelling
|
||
|
boarders from one of the thern craft that had grappled
|
||
|
us broadside. In the wild lust of hand-to-hand combat
|
||
|
my old dauntless hopefulness returned. And as thern after
|
||
|
thern went down beneath my blade, I could almost feel that
|
||
|
we should win success in the end, even from apparent failure.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My presence among the men so greatly inspirited them
|
||
|
that they fell upon the luckless whites with such terrible
|
||
|
ferocity that within a few moments we had turned the
|
||
|
tables upon them and a second later as we swarmed their
|
||
|
own decks I had the satisfaction of seeing their commander
|
||
|
take the long leap from the bows of his vessel in token of
|
||
|
surrender and defeat.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then I joined Kantos Kan. He had been watching what
|
||
|
had taken place on the deck below, and it seemed to have
|
||
|
given him a new thought. Immediately he passed an order
|
||
|
to one of his officers, and presently the colours of the
|
||
|
Prince of Helium broke from every point of the flagship.
|
||
|
A great cheer arose from the men of our own ship, a cheer
|
||
|
that was taken up by every other vessel of our expedition
|
||
|
as they in turn broke my colours from their upper works.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then Kantos Kan sprang his coup. A signal legible to
|
||
|
every sailor of all the fleets engaged in that fierce struggle
|
||
|
was strung aloft upon the flagship.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Men of Helium for the Prince of Helium against all
|
||
|
his enemies," it read. Presently my colours broke from
|
||
|
one of Zat Arras' ships. Then from another and another.
|
||
|
On some we could see fierce battles waging between the
|
||
|
Zodangan soldiery and the Heliumetic crews, but eventually
|
||
|
the colours of the Prince of Helium floated above every
|
||
|
ship that had followed Zat Arras upon our trail--only his
|
||
|
flagship flew them not.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Zat Arras had brought five thousand ships. The sky was
|
||
|
black with the three enormous fleets. It was Helium against
|
||
|
the field now, and the fight had settled to countless individual
|
||
|
duels. There could be little or no manoeuvering of fleets in
|
||
|
that crowded, fire-split sky.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Zat Arras' flagship was close to my own. I could see the
|
||
|
thin features of the man from where I stood. His Zodangan
|
||
|
crew was pouring broadside after broadside into us and we were
|
||
|
returning their fire with equal ferocity. Closer and closer
|
||
|
came the two vessels until but a few yards intervened.
|
||
|
Grapplers and boarders lined the contiguous rails of each.
|
||
|
We were preparing for the death struggle with our hated enemy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was but a yard between the two mighty ships as
|
||
|
the first grappling irons were hurled. I rushed to the deck to
|
||
|
be with my men as they boarded. Just as the vessels came
|
||
|
together with a slight shock, I forced my way through the
|
||
|
lines and was the first to spring to the deck of Zat Arras'
|
||
|
ship. After me poured a yelling, cheering, cursing throng of
|
||
|
Helium's best fighting-men. Nothing could withstand them
|
||
|
in the fever of battle lust which enthralled them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Down went the Zodangans before that surging tide of
|
||
|
war, and as my men cleared the lower decks I sprang to
|
||
|
the forward deck where stood Zat Arras.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are my prisoner, Zat Arras," I cried. "Yield and
|
||
|
you shall have quarter."
|
||
|
|
||
|
For a moment I could not tell whether he contemplated
|
||
|
acceding to my demand or facing me with drawn sword.
|
||
|
For an instant he stood hesitating, and then throwing down
|
||
|
his arms he turned and rushed to the opposite side of the
|
||
|
deck. Before I could overtake him he had sprung to the rail
|
||
|
and hurled himself headforemost into the awful depths below.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And thus came Zat Arras, Jed of Zodanga, to his end.
|
||
|
|
||
|
On and on went that strange battle. The therns and
|
||
|
blacks had not combined against us. Wherever thern ship
|
||
|
met ship of the First Born was a battle royal, and in this I
|
||
|
thought I saw our salvation. Wherever messages could be
|
||
|
passed between us that could not be intercepted by our
|
||
|
enemies I passed the word that all our vessels were to
|
||
|
withdraw from the fight as rapidly as possible, taking a
|
||
|
position to the west and south of the combatants. I also sent
|
||
|
an air scout to the fighting green men in the gardens below
|
||
|
to re-embark, and to the transports to join us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My commanders were further instructed than when engaged
|
||
|
with an enemy to draw him as rapidly as possible toward a
|
||
|
ship of his hereditary foeman, and by careful manoeuvring to
|
||
|
force the two to engage, thus leaving him- self free to withdraw.
|
||
|
This stratagem worked to perfection, and just before the sun
|
||
|
went down I had the satisfaction of seeing all that was left
|
||
|
of my once mighty fleet gathered nearly twenty miles southwest
|
||
|
of the still terrific battle between the blacks and whites.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I now transferred Xodar to another battleship and sent
|
||
|
him with all the transports and five thousand battleships
|
||
|
directly overhead to the Temple of Issus. Carthoris and I,
|
||
|
with Kantos Kan, took the remaining ships and headed
|
||
|
for the entrance to Omean.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Our plan now was to attempt to make a combined assault
|
||
|
upon Issus at dawn of the following day. Tars Tarkas
|
||
|
with his green warriors and Hor Vastus with the red men,
|
||
|
guided by Xodar, were to land within the garden of Issus
|
||
|
or the surrounding plains; while Carthoris, Kantos Kan, and
|
||
|
I were to lead our smaller force from the sea of Omean through
|
||
|
the pits beneath the temple, which Carthoris knew so well.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I now learned for the first time the cause of my ten
|
||
|
ships' retreat from the mouth of the shaft. It seemed
|
||
|
that when they had come upon the shaft the navy of the
|
||
|
First Born were already issuing from its mouth. Fully twenty
|
||
|
vessels had emerged, and though they gave battle immediately
|
||
|
in an effort to stem the tide that rolled from the black pit,
|
||
|
the odds against them were too great and they were forced to flee.
|
||
|
|
||
|
With great caution we approached the shaft, under cover
|
||
|
of darkness. At a distance of several miles I caused the
|
||
|
fleet to be halted, and from there Carthoris went ahead alone
|
||
|
upon a one-man flier to reconnoitre. In perhaps half an
|
||
|
hour he returned to report that there was no sign of a patrol
|
||
|
boat or of the enemy in any form, and so we moved swiftly
|
||
|
and noiselessly forward once more toward Omean.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At the mouth of the shaft we stopped again for a moment
|
||
|
for all the vessels to reach their previously appointed stations,
|
||
|
then with the flagship I dropped quickly into the black depths,
|
||
|
while one by one the other vessels followed me in quick succession.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We had decided to stake all on the chance that we
|
||
|
would be able to reach the temple by the subterranean way
|
||
|
and so we left no guard of vessels at the shaft's mouth.
|
||
|
Nor would it have profited us any to have done so, for we
|
||
|
did not have sufficient force all told to have withstood the
|
||
|
vast navy of the First Born had they returned to engage us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For the safety of our entrance upon Omean we depended
|
||
|
largely upon the very boldness of it, believing that it would
|
||
|
be some little time before the First Born on guard there
|
||
|
would realize that it was an enemy and not their own
|
||
|
returning fleet that was entering the vault of the buried sea.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And such proved to be the case. In fact, four hundred of
|
||
|
my fleet of five hundred rested safely upon the bosom of
|
||
|
Omean before the first shot was fired. The battle was short
|
||
|
and hot, but there could have been but one outcome, for the
|
||
|
First Born in the carelessness of fancied security had left
|
||
|
but a handful of ancient and obsolete hulks to guard their
|
||
|
mighty harbour.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was at Carthoris' suggestion that we landed our prisoners
|
||
|
under guard upon a couple of the larger islands, and then
|
||
|
towed the ships of the First Born to the shaft, where we
|
||
|
managed to wedge a number of them securely in the
|
||
|
interior of the great well. Then we turned on the buoyance
|
||
|
rays in the balance of them and let them rise by themselves
|
||
|
to further block the passage to Omean as they came into
|
||
|
contact with the vessels already lodged there.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We now felt that it would be some time at least before
|
||
|
the returning First Born could reach the surface of Omean,
|
||
|
and that we would have ample opportunity to make for the
|
||
|
subterranean passages which lead to Issus. One of the first
|
||
|
steps I took was to hasten personally with a good-sized force
|
||
|
to the island of the submarine, which I took without
|
||
|
resistance on the part of the small guard there.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I found the submarine in its pool, and at once placed a
|
||
|
strong guard upon it and the island, where I remained to
|
||
|
wait the coming of Carthoris and the others.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Among the prisoners was Yersted, commander of the
|
||
|
submarine. He recognized me from the three trips that I
|
||
|
had taken with him during my captivity among the First Born.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How does it seem," I asked him, "to have the tables
|
||
|
turned? To be prisoner of your erstwhile captive?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He smiled, a very grim smile pregnant with hidden meaning.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It will not be for long, John Carter," he replied.
|
||
|
"We have been expecting you and we are prepared."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"So it would appear," I answered, "for you were all
|
||
|
ready to become my prisoners with scarce a blow struck
|
||
|
on either side."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The fleet must have missed you," he said, "but it will
|
||
|
return to Omean, and then that will be a very different
|
||
|
matter--for John Carter."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do not know that the fleet has missed me as yet," I
|
||
|
said, but of course he did not grasp my meaning, and
|
||
|
only looked puzzled.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Many prisoners travel to Issus in your grim craft, Yersted?"
|
||
|
I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Very many," he assented.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Might you remember one whom men called Dejah Thoris?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, indeed, for her great beauty, and then, too, for the
|
||
|
fact that she was wife to the first mortal that ever escaped
|
||
|
from Issus through all the countless ages of her godhood.
|
||
|
And they way that Issus remembers her best as the wife of
|
||
|
one and the mother of another who raised their hands
|
||
|
against the Goddess of Life Eternal."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I shuddered for fear of the cowardly revenge that I knew
|
||
|
Issus might have taken upon the innocent Dejah Thoris for
|
||
|
the sacrilege of her son and her husband.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And where is Dejah Thoris now?" I asked, knowing that
|
||
|
he would say the words I most dreaded, but yet I loved her
|
||
|
so that I could not refrain from hearing even the worst
|
||
|
about her fate so that it fell from the lips of one who
|
||
|
had seen her but recently. It was to me as though it
|
||
|
brought her closer to me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yesterday the monthly rites of Issus were held," replied
|
||
|
Yersted, "and I saw her then sitting in her accustomed
|
||
|
place at the foot of Issus."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What," I cried, "she is not dead, then?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, no," replied the black, "it has been no year
|
||
|
since she gazed upon the divine glory of the radiant face of--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No year?" I interrupted.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, no," insisted Yersted. "It cannot have been upward
|
||
|
of three hundred and seventy or eighty days."
|
||
|
|
||
|
A great light burst upon me. How stupid I had been! I
|
||
|
could scarcely retain an outward exhibition of my great
|
||
|
joy. Why had I forgotten the great difference in the length
|
||
|
of Martian and Earthly years! The ten Earth years I had
|
||
|
spent upon Barsoom had encompassed but five years and
|
||
|
ninety-six days of Martian time, whose days are forty-one
|
||
|
minutes longer than ours, and whose years number six hundred
|
||
|
and eighty-seven days.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I am in time! I am in time! The words surged through
|
||
|
my brain again and again, until at last I must have voiced
|
||
|
them audibly, for Yersted shook his head.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In time to save your Princess?" he asked, and then without
|
||
|
waiting for my reply, "No, John Carter, Issus will not give
|
||
|
up her own. She knows that you are coming, and ere ever a
|
||
|
vandal foot is set within the precincts of the Temple of Issus,
|
||
|
if such a calamity should befall, Dejah Thoris will be put
|
||
|
away for ever from the last faint hope of rescue."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You mean that she will be killed merely to thwart me?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Not that, other than as a last resort," he replied. "Hast
|
||
|
ever heard of the Temple of the Sun? It is there that they
|
||
|
will put her. It lies far within the inner court of the Temple
|
||
|
of Issus, a little temple that raises a thin spire far above the
|
||
|
spires and minarets of the great temple that surrounds it.
|
||
|
Beneath it, in the ground, there lies the main body of the
|
||
|
temple consisting in six hundred and eighty-seven circular
|
||
|
chambers, one below another. To each chamber a single
|
||
|
corridor leads through solid rock from the pits of Issus.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"As the entire Temple of the Sun revolves once with
|
||
|
each revolution of Barsoom about the sun, but once each
|
||
|
year does the entrance to each separate chamber come
|
||
|
opposite the mouth of the corridor which forms its only
|
||
|
link to the world without.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Here Issus puts those who displease her, but whom she
|
||
|
does not care to execute forthwith. Or to punish a noble
|
||
|
of the First Born she may cause him to be placed within
|
||
|
a chamber of the Temple of the Sun for a year. Ofttimes
|
||
|
she imprisons an executioner with the condemned, that
|
||
|
death may come in a certain horrible form upon a given
|
||
|
day, or again but enough food is deposited in the chamber
|
||
|
to sustain life but the number of days that Issus has
|
||
|
allotted for mental anguish.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Thus will Dejah Thoris die, and her fate will be sealed
|
||
|
by the first alien foot that crosses the threshold of Issus."
|
||
|
|
||
|
So I was to be thwarted in the end, although I had performed
|
||
|
the miraculous and come within a few short moments of my
|
||
|
divine Princess, yet was I as far from her as when I stood
|
||
|
upon the banks of the Hudson forty-eight million miles away.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXI
|
||
|
|
||
|
THROUGH FLOOD AND FLAME
|
||
|
|
||
|
Yersted's information convinced me that there was no time
|
||
|
to be lost. I must reach the Temple of Issus secretly before
|
||
|
the forces under Tars Tarkas assaulted at dawn. Once within
|
||
|
its hated walls I was positive that I could overcome the
|
||
|
guards of Issus and bear away my Princess, for at my back
|
||
|
I would have a force ample for the occasion.
|
||
|
|
||
|
No sooner had Carthoris and the others joined me than
|
||
|
we commenced the transportation of our men through the
|
||
|
submerged passage to the mouth of the gangways which lead
|
||
|
from the submarine pool at the temple end of the watery
|
||
|
tunnel to the pits of Issus.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Many trips were required, but at last all stood safely
|
||
|
together again at the beginning of the end of our quest.
|
||
|
Five thousand strong we were, all seasoned fighting-men
|
||
|
of the most warlike race of the red men of Barsoom.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As Carthoris alone knew the hidden ways of the tunnels
|
||
|
we could not divide the party and attack the temple at
|
||
|
several points at once as would have been most desirable,
|
||
|
and so it was decided that he lead us all as quickly as
|
||
|
possible to a point near the temple's centre.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As we were about to leave the pool and enter the corridor,
|
||
|
an officer called my attention to the waters upon which
|
||
|
the submarine floated. At first they seemed to be merely
|
||
|
agitated as from the movement of some great body beneath the
|
||
|
surface, and I at once conjectured that another submarine
|
||
|
was rising to the surface in pursuit of us; but presently it
|
||
|
became apparent that the level of the waters was rising, not
|
||
|
with extreme rapidity, but very surely, and that soon they
|
||
|
would overflow the sides of the pool and submerge the floor
|
||
|
of the chamber.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For a moment I did not fully grasp the terrible import
|
||
|
of the slowly rising water. It was Carthoris who realized the
|
||
|
full meaning of the thing--its cause and the reason for it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Haste!" he cried. "If we delay, we all are lost. The pumps
|
||
|
of Omean have been stopped. They would drown us like rats
|
||
|
in a trap. We must reach the upper levels of the pits in
|
||
|
advance of the flood or we shall never reach them. Come."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Lead the way, Carthoris," I cried. "We will follow."
|
||
|
|
||
|
At my command, the youth leaped into one of the corridors,
|
||
|
and in column of twos the soldiers followed him in good order,
|
||
|
each company entering the corridor only at the command of
|
||
|
its dwar, or captain.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Before the last company filed from the chamber the water
|
||
|
was ankle deep, and that the men were nervous was quite
|
||
|
evident. Entirely unaccustomed to water except in quantities
|
||
|
sufficient for drinking and bathing purposes the red Martians
|
||
|
instinctively shrank from it in such formidable depths and
|
||
|
menacing activity. That they were undaunted while it swirled
|
||
|
and eddied about their ankles, spoke well for their bravery
|
||
|
and their discipline.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was the last to leave the chamber of the submarine, and
|
||
|
as I followed the rear of the column toward the corridor, I
|
||
|
moved through water to my knees. The corridor, too, was
|
||
|
flooded to the same depth, for its floor was on a level with
|
||
|
the floor of the chamber from which it led, nor was there
|
||
|
any perceptible rise for many yards.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The march of the troops through the corridor was as rapid
|
||
|
as was consistent with the number of men that moved
|
||
|
through so narrow a passage, but it was not ample to permit
|
||
|
us to gain appreciably on the pursuing tide. As the level of
|
||
|
the passage rose, so, too, did the waters rise until it soon
|
||
|
became apparent to me, who brought up the rear, that they
|
||
|
were gaining rapidly upon us. I could understand the reason
|
||
|
for this, as with the narrowing expanse of Omean as the waters
|
||
|
rose toward the apex of its dome, the rapidity of its rise would
|
||
|
increase in inverse ratio to the ever-lessening space to be filled.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Long ere the last of the column could hope to reach the
|
||
|
upper pits which lay above the danger point I was convinced
|
||
|
that the waters would surge after us in overwhelming volume,
|
||
|
and that fully half the expedition would be snuffed out.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I cast about for some means of saving as many as
|
||
|
possible of the doomed men, I saw a diverging corridor
|
||
|
which seemed to rise at a steep angle at my right. The
|
||
|
waters were now swirling about my waist. The men directly
|
||
|
before me were quickly becoming panic-stricken. Something
|
||
|
must be done at once or they would rush forward upon their
|
||
|
fellows in a mad stampede that would result in trampling
|
||
|
down hundreds beneath the flood and eventually clogging the
|
||
|
passage beyond any hope of retreat for those in advance.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Raising my voice to its utmost, I shouted my command
|
||
|
to the dwars ahead of me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Call back the last twenty-five utans," I shouted.
|
||
|
"Here seems a way of escape. Turn back and follow me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
My orders were obeyed by nearer thirty utans, so that some
|
||
|
three thousand men came about and hastened into the teeth
|
||
|
of the flood to reach the corridor up which I directed them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As the first dwar passed in with his utan I cautioned him
|
||
|
to listen closely for my commands, and under no circumstances
|
||
|
to venture into the open, or leave the pits for the temple
|
||
|
proper until I should have come up with him, "or you know
|
||
|
that I died before I could reach you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The officer saluted and left me. The men filed rapidly past
|
||
|
me and entered the diverging corridor which I hoped would
|
||
|
lead to safety. The water rose breast high. Men stumbled,
|
||
|
floundered, and went down. Many I grasped and set upon
|
||
|
their feet again, but alone the work was greater than I could
|
||
|
cope with. Soldiers were being swept beneath the boiling
|
||
|
torrent, never to rise. At length the dwar of the 10th utan
|
||
|
took a stand beside me. He was a valorous soldier, Gur Tus
|
||
|
by name, and together we kept the now thoroughly frightened
|
||
|
troops in the semblance of order and rescued many that
|
||
|
would have drowned otherwise.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Djor Kantos, son of Kantos Kan, and a padwar of the
|
||
|
fifth utan joined us when his utan reached the opening
|
||
|
through which the men were fleeing. Thereafter not a man
|
||
|
was lost of all the hundreds that remained to pass from the
|
||
|
main corridor to the branch.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As the last utan was filing past us the waters had risen
|
||
|
until they surged about our necks, but we clasped hands
|
||
|
and stood our ground until the last man had passed to the
|
||
|
comparative safety of the new passageway. Here we found
|
||
|
an immediate and steep ascent, so that within a hundred
|
||
|
yards we had reached a point above the waters.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For a few minutes we continued rapidly up the steep
|
||
|
grade, which I hoped would soon bring us quickly to
|
||
|
the upper pits that let into the Temple of Issus. But I was
|
||
|
to meet with a cruel disappointment.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Suddenly I heard a cry of "fire" far ahead, followed almost
|
||
|
at once by cries of terror and the loud commands of dwars
|
||
|
and padwars who were evidently attempting to direct their
|
||
|
men away from some grave danger. At last the report
|
||
|
came back to us. "They have fired the pits ahead."
|
||
|
"We are hemmed in by flames in front and flood behind."
|
||
|
"Help, John Carter; we are suffocating," and then there
|
||
|
swept back upon us at the rear a wave of dense smoke
|
||
|
that sent us, stumbling and blinded, into a choking retreat.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was naught to do other than seek a new avenue of
|
||
|
escape. The fire and smoke were to be feared a thousand
|
||
|
times over the water, and so I seized upon the first gallery
|
||
|
which led out of and up from the suffocating smoke that
|
||
|
was engulfing us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Again I stood to one side while the soldiers hastened through
|
||
|
on the new way. Some two thousand must have passed at a rapid run,
|
||
|
when the stream ceased, but I was not sure that all had been rescued
|
||
|
who had not passed the point of origin of the flames, and so to assure
|
||
|
myself that no poor devil was left behind to die a horrible death,
|
||
|
unsuccoured, I ran quickly up the gallery in the direction of the
|
||
|
flames which I could now see burning with a dull glow far ahead.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was hot and stifling work, but at last I reached a
|
||
|
point where the fire lit up the corridor sufficiently
|
||
|
for me to see that no soldier of Helium lay between me
|
||
|
and the conflagration--what was in it or upon the far side
|
||
|
I could not know, nor could any man have passed through
|
||
|
that seething hell of chemicals and lived to learn.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Having satisfied my sense of duty, I turned and ran rapidly
|
||
|
back to the corridor through which my men had passed.
|
||
|
To my horror, however, I found that my retreat in this
|
||
|
direction had been blocked--across the mouth of the corridor
|
||
|
stood a massive steel grating that had evidently been lowered
|
||
|
from its resting-place above for the purpose of effectually
|
||
|
cutting off my escape.
|
||
|
|
||
|
That our principal movements were known to the First
|
||
|
Born I could not have doubted, in view of the attack of
|
||
|
the fleet upon us the day before, nor could the stopping
|
||
|
of the pumps of Omean at the psychological moment have
|
||
|
been due to chance, nor the starting of a chemical
|
||
|
combustion within the one corridor through which we
|
||
|
were advancing upon the Temple of Issus been due to
|
||
|
aught than well-calculated design.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And now the dropping of the steel gate to pen me effectually
|
||
|
between fire and flood seemed to indicate that invisible
|
||
|
eyes were upon us at every moment. What chance had I,
|
||
|
then, to rescue Dejah Thoris were I to be compelled to fight
|
||
|
foes who never showed themselves. A thousand times I berated
|
||
|
myself for being drawn into such a trap as I might
|
||
|
have known these pits easily could be. Now I saw that it
|
||
|
would have been much better to have kept our force intact
|
||
|
and made a concerted attack upon the temple from the valley
|
||
|
side, trusting to chance and our great fighting ability to
|
||
|
have overwhelmed the First Born and compelled the safe
|
||
|
delivery of Dejah Thoris to me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The smoke from the fire was forcing me further and further
|
||
|
back down the corridor toward the waters which I could hear
|
||
|
surging through the darkness. With my men had gone the
|
||
|
last torch, nor was this corridor lighted by the radiance
|
||
|
of phosphorescent rock as were those of the lower levels.
|
||
|
It was this fact that assured me that I was not far from
|
||
|
the upper pits which lie directly beneath the temple.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Finally I felt the lapping waters about my feet. The smoke
|
||
|
was thick behind me. My suffering was intense. There seemed
|
||
|
but one thing to do, and that to choose the easier death
|
||
|
which confronted me, and so I moved on down the corridor
|
||
|
until the cold waters of Omean closed about me, and I swam
|
||
|
on through utter blackness toward--what?
|
||
|
|
||
|
The instinct of self-preservation is strong even when one,
|
||
|
unafraid and in the possession of his highest reasoning
|
||
|
faculties, knows that death--positive and unalterable--lies
|
||
|
just ahead. And so I swam slowly on, waiting for my head
|
||
|
to touch the top of the corridor, which would mean that I
|
||
|
had reached the limit of my flight and the point where I
|
||
|
must sink for ever to an unmarked grave.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But to my surprise I ran against a blank wall before I
|
||
|
reached a point where the waters came to the roof of the
|
||
|
corridor. Could I be mistaken? I felt around. No, I had
|
||
|
come to the main corridor, and still there was a breathing
|
||
|
space between the surface of the water and the rocky
|
||
|
ceiling above. And then I turned up the main corridor in
|
||
|
the direction that Carthoris and the head of the column had
|
||
|
passed a half-hour before. On and on I swam, my heart
|
||
|
growing lighter at every stroke, for I knew that I was
|
||
|
approaching closer and closer to the point where there
|
||
|
would be no chance that the waters ahead could be deeper
|
||
|
than they were about me. I was positive that I must soon
|
||
|
feel the solid floor beneath my feet again and that once
|
||
|
more my chance would come to reach the Temple of Issus
|
||
|
and the side of the fair prisoner who languished there.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But even as hope was at its highest I felt the sudden shock
|
||
|
of contact as my head struck the rocks above. The worst,
|
||
|
then, had come to me. I had reached one of those rare
|
||
|
places where a Martian tunnel dips suddenly to a lower level.
|
||
|
Somewhere beyond I knew that it rose again, but of what value
|
||
|
was that to me, since I did not know how great the distance that
|
||
|
it maintained a level entirely beneath the surface of the water!
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was but a single forlorn hope, and I took it. Filling
|
||
|
my lungs with air, I dived beneath the surface and swam
|
||
|
through the inky, icy blackness on and on along the submerged
|
||
|
gallery. Time and time again I rose with upstretched
|
||
|
hand, only to feel the disappointing rocks close above me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Not for much longer would my lungs withstand the strain
|
||
|
upon them. I felt that I must soon succumb, nor was there
|
||
|
any retreating now that I had gone this far. I knew positively
|
||
|
that I could never endure to retrace my path now to the point
|
||
|
from which I had felt the waters close above my head. Death
|
||
|
stared me in the face, nor ever can I recall a time that I so
|
||
|
distinctly felt the icy breath from his dead lips upon my brow.
|
||
|
|
||
|
One more frantic effort I made with my fast ebbing strength.
|
||
|
Weakly I rose for the last time--my tortured lungs gasped for
|
||
|
the breath that would fill them with a strange and numbing element,
|
||
|
but instead I felt the revivifying breath of life-giving air surge
|
||
|
through my starving nostrils into my dying lungs. I was saved.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A few more strokes brought me to a point where my feet
|
||
|
touched the floor, and soon thereafter I was above the
|
||
|
water level entirely, and racing like mad along the corridor
|
||
|
searching for the first doorway that would lead me to Issus.
|
||
|
If I could not have Dejah Thoris again I was at least
|
||
|
determined to avenge her death, nor would any life satisfy
|
||
|
me other than that of the fiend incarnate who was the cause
|
||
|
of such immeasurable suffering upon Barsoom.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Sooner than I had expected I came to what appeared to
|
||
|
me to be a sudden exit into the temple above. It was at the
|
||
|
right side of the corridor, which ran on, probably, to other
|
||
|
entrances to the pile above.
|
||
|
|
||
|
To me one point was as good as another. What knew I
|
||
|
where any of them led! And so without waiting to be again
|
||
|
discovered and thwarted, I ran quickly up the short, steep
|
||
|
incline and pushed open the doorway at its end.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The portal swung slowly in, and before it could be
|
||
|
slammed against me I sprang into the chamber beyond.
|
||
|
Although not yet dawn, the room was brilliantly lighted.
|
||
|
Its sole occupant lay prone upon a low couch at the further side,
|
||
|
apparently in sleep. From the hangings and sumptuous furniture
|
||
|
of the room I judged it to be a living-room of some priestess,
|
||
|
possibly of Issus herself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At the thought the blood tingled through my veins. What,
|
||
|
indeed, if fortune had been kind enough to place the hideous
|
||
|
creature alone and unguarded in my hands. With her as
|
||
|
hostage I could force acquiescence to my every demand.
|
||
|
Cautiously I approached the recumbent figure, on noiseless feet.
|
||
|
Closer and closer I came to it, but I had crossed but little
|
||
|
more than half the chamber when the figure stirred, and, as
|
||
|
I sprang, rose and faced me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At first an expression of terror overspread the features of the woman
|
||
|
who confronted me--then startled incredulity-- hope--thanksgiving.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My heart pounded within my breast as I advanced toward
|
||
|
her--tears came to my eyes--and the words that would have
|
||
|
poured forth in a perfect torrent choked in my throat as I
|
||
|
opened my arms and took into them once more the woman
|
||
|
I loved--Dejah Thoris, Princess of Helium.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXII
|
||
|
|
||
|
VICTORY AND DEFEAT
|
||
|
|
||
|
"John Carter, John Carter," she sobbed, with her dear
|
||
|
head upon my shoulder; "even now I can scarce believe the
|
||
|
witness of my own eyes. When the girl, Thuvia, told me
|
||
|
that you had returned to Barsoom, I listened, but I could
|
||
|
not understand, for it seemed that such happiness would be
|
||
|
impossible for one who had suffered so in silent loneliness for
|
||
|
all these long years. At last, when I realized that it was truth,
|
||
|
and then came to know the awful place in which I was held prisoner,
|
||
|
I learned to doubt that even you could reach me here.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"As the days passed, and moon after moon went by
|
||
|
without bringing even the faintest rumour of you, I resigned
|
||
|
myself to my fate. And now that you have come, scarce can
|
||
|
I believe it. For an hour I have heard the sounds of
|
||
|
conflict within the palace. I knew not what they meant, but
|
||
|
I have hoped against hope that it might be the men of
|
||
|
Helium headed by my Prince.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And tell me, what of Carthoris, our son?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He was with me less than an hour since, Dejah Thoris,"
|
||
|
I replied. "It must have been he whose men you have heard
|
||
|
battling within the precincts of the temple.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Where is Issus?" I asked suddenly.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Dejah Thoris shrugged her shoulders.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She sent me under guard to this room just before the
|
||
|
fighting began within the temple halls. She said that she
|
||
|
would send for me later. She seemed very angry and somewhat
|
||
|
fearful. Never have I seen her act in so uncertain and almost
|
||
|
terrified a manner. Now I know that it must have been because
|
||
|
she had learned that John Carter, Prince of Helium, was
|
||
|
approaching to demand an accounting of her for the
|
||
|
imprisonment of his Princess."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The sounds of conflict, the clash of arms, the shouting and
|
||
|
the hurrying of many feet came to us from various parts of
|
||
|
the temple. I knew that I was needed there, but I dared
|
||
|
not leave Dejah Thoris, nor dared I take her with me into
|
||
|
the turmoil and danger of battle.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At last I bethought me of the pits from which I had just
|
||
|
emerged. Why not secrete her there until I could return and
|
||
|
fetch her away in safety and for ever from this awful place.
|
||
|
I explained my plan to her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For a moment she clung more closely to me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I cannot bear to be parted from you now, even for a moment,
|
||
|
John Carter," she said. "I shudder at the thought of
|
||
|
being alone again where that terrible creature might
|
||
|
discover me. You do not know her. None can imagine her
|
||
|
ferocious cruelty who has not witnessed her daily acts for
|
||
|
over half a year. It has taken me nearly all this time to
|
||
|
realize even the things that I have seen with my own eyes."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I shall not leave you, then, my Princess," I replied.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She was silent for a moment, then she drew my face to hers
|
||
|
and kissed me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Go, John Carter," she said. "Our son is there, and the
|
||
|
soldiers of Helium, fighting for the Princess of Helium.
|
||
|
Where they are you should be. I must not think of myself now,
|
||
|
but of them and of my husband's duty. I may not stand in
|
||
|
the way of that. Hide me in the pits, and go."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I led her to the door through which I had entered the
|
||
|
chamber from below. There I pressed her dear form to me,
|
||
|
and then, though it tore my heart to do it, and filled me only
|
||
|
with the blackest shadows of terrible foreboding, I guided
|
||
|
her across the threshold, kissed her once again, and closed
|
||
|
the door upon her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Without hesitating longer, I hurried from the chamber in the
|
||
|
direction of the greatest tumult. Scarce half a dozen chambers
|
||
|
had I traversed before I came upon the theatre of a fierce
|
||
|
struggle. The blacks were massed at the entrance to a great
|
||
|
chamber where they were attempting to block the further
|
||
|
progress of a body of red men toward the inner sacred
|
||
|
precincts of the temple.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Coming from within as I did, I found myself behind the
|
||
|
blacks, and, without waiting to even calculate their numbers
|
||
|
or the foolhardiness of my venture, I charged swiftly across
|
||
|
the chamber and fell upon them from the rear with my
|
||
|
keen long-sword.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I struck the first blow I cried aloud, "For Helium!"
|
||
|
And then I rained cut after cut upon the surprised warriors,
|
||
|
while the reds without took heart at the sound of my voice,
|
||
|
and with shouts of "John Carter! John Carter!" redoubled
|
||
|
their efforts so effectually that before the blacks could
|
||
|
recover from their temporary demoralization their ranks
|
||
|
were broken and the red men had burst into the chamber.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The fight within that room, had it had but a competent
|
||
|
chronicler, would go down in the annals of Barsoom as a
|
||
|
historic memorial to the grim ferocity of her warlike people.
|
||
|
Five hundred men fought there that day, the black men against
|
||
|
the red. No man asked quarter or gave it. As though by
|
||
|
common assent they fought, as though to determine once
|
||
|
and for all their right to live, in accordance with the law of
|
||
|
the survival of the fittest.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I think we all knew that upon the outcome of this battle
|
||
|
would hinge for ever the relative positions of these two
|
||
|
races upon Barsoom. It was a battle between the old and the
|
||
|
new, but not for once did I question the outcome of it.
|
||
|
With Carthoris at my side I fought for the red men of Barsoom
|
||
|
and for their total emancipation from the throttling bondage
|
||
|
of a hideous superstition.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Back and forth across the room we surged, until the floor
|
||
|
was ankle deep in blood, and dead men lay so thickly there
|
||
|
that half the time we stood upon their bodies as we fought.
|
||
|
As we swung toward the great windows which overlooked
|
||
|
the gardens of Issus a sight met my gaze which sent a wave of
|
||
|
exultation over me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Look!" I cried. "Men of the First Born, look!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
For an instant the fighting ceased, and with one accord
|
||
|
every eye turned in the direction I had indicated, and the
|
||
|
sight they saw was one no man of the First Born had ever
|
||
|
imagined could be.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Across the gardens, from side to side, stood a wavering
|
||
|
line of black warriors, while beyond them and forcing them
|
||
|
ever back was a great horde of green warriors astride their
|
||
|
mighty thoats. And as we watched, one, fiercer and more
|
||
|
grimly terrible than his fellows, rode forward from the rear,
|
||
|
and as he came he shouted some fierce command to his terrible legion.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was Tars Tarkas, Jeddak of Thark, and as he couched his great
|
||
|
forty-foot metal-shod lance we saw his warriors do likewise.
|
||
|
Then it was that we interpreted his command. Twenty yards
|
||
|
now separated the green men from the black line.
|
||
|
Another word from the great Thark, and with a wild and
|
||
|
terrifying battle-cry the green warriors charged.
|
||
|
For a moment the black line held, but only for a moment--then
|
||
|
the fearsome beasts that bore equally terrible riders passed
|
||
|
completely through it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
After them came utan upon utan of red men. The green
|
||
|
horde broke to surround the temple. The red men charged
|
||
|
for the interior, and then we turned to continue our interrupted
|
||
|
battle; but our foes had vanished.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My first thought was of Dejah Thoris. Calling to Carthoris
|
||
|
that I had found his mother, I started on a run toward the
|
||
|
chamber where I had left her, with my boy close beside me.
|
||
|
After us came those of our little force who had survived
|
||
|
the bloody conflict.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The moment I entered the room I saw that some one
|
||
|
had been there since I had left. A silk lay upon the floor.
|
||
|
It had not been there before. There were also a dagger and
|
||
|
several metal ornaments strewn about as though torn from
|
||
|
their wearer in a struggle. But worst of all, the door
|
||
|
leading to the pits where I had hidden my Princess was ajar.
|
||
|
|
||
|
With a bound I was before it, and, thrusting it open,
|
||
|
rushed within. Dejah Thoris had vanished. I called her name
|
||
|
aloud again and again, but there was no response. I think
|
||
|
in that instant I hovered upon the verge of insanity. I do not
|
||
|
recall what I said or did, but I know that for an instant I
|
||
|
was seized with the rage of a maniac.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Issus!" I cried. "Issus! Where is Issus? Search the temple
|
||
|
for her, but let no man harm her but John Carter. Carthoris,
|
||
|
where are the apartments of Issus?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This way," cried the boy, and, without waiting to know
|
||
|
that I had heard him, he dashed off at breakneck speed,
|
||
|
further into the bowels of the temple. As fast as he went,
|
||
|
however, I was still beside him, urging him on to greater speed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At last we came to a great carved door, and through
|
||
|
this Carthoris dashed, a foot ahead of me. Within, we came
|
||
|
upon such a scene as I had witnessed within the temple
|
||
|
once before--the throne of Issus, with the reclining slaves,
|
||
|
and about it the ranks of soldiery.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We did not even give the men a chance to draw, so quickly
|
||
|
were we upon them. With a single cut I struck down two
|
||
|
in the front rank. And then by the mere weight and
|
||
|
momentum of my body, I rushed completely through the two
|
||
|
remaining ranks and sprang upon the dais beside the carved
|
||
|
sorapus throne.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The repulsive creature, squatting there in terror, attempted
|
||
|
to escape me and leap into a trap behind her. But this time
|
||
|
I was not to be outwitted by any such petty subterfuge.
|
||
|
Before she had half arisen I had grasped her by the arm, and
|
||
|
then, as I saw the guard starting to make a concerted rush
|
||
|
upon me from all sides, I whipped out my dagger and,
|
||
|
holding it close to that vile breast, ordered them to halt.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Back!" I cried to them. "Back! The first black foot that is
|
||
|
planted upon this platform sends my dagger into Issus' heart."
|
||
|
|
||
|
For an instant they hesitated. Then an officer ordered
|
||
|
them back, while from the outer corridor there swept into the
|
||
|
throne room at the heels of my little party of survivors a
|
||
|
full thousand red men under Kantos Kan, Hor Vastus, and Xodar.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Where is Dejah Thoris?" I cried to the thing within my hands.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For a moment her eyes roved wildly about the scene beneath her.
|
||
|
I think that it took a moment for the true condition to make
|
||
|
any impression upon her--she could not at first realize that
|
||
|
the temple had fallen before the assault of men of the outer world.
|
||
|
When she did, there must have come, too, a terrible realization
|
||
|
of what it meant to her--the loss of power--humiliation--the
|
||
|
exposure of the fraud and imposture which she had for so long
|
||
|
played upon her own people.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was just one thing needed to complete the reality
|
||
|
of the picture she was seeing, and that was added by the
|
||
|
highest noble of her realm--the high priest of her religion--
|
||
|
the prime minister of her government.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Issus, Goddess of Death, and of Life Eternal," he cried,
|
||
|
"arise in the might of thy righteous wrath and with one
|
||
|
single wave of thy omnipotent hand strike dead thy blasphemers!
|
||
|
Let not one escape. Issus, thy people depend upon thee.
|
||
|
Daughter of the Lesser Moon, thou only art all-powerful.
|
||
|
Thou only canst save thy people. I am done. We await thy will.
|
||
|
Strike!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
And then it was that she went mad. A screaming, gibbering
|
||
|
maniac writhed in my grasp. It bit and clawed and scratched
|
||
|
in impotent fury. And then it laughed a weird and
|
||
|
terrible laughter that froze the blood. The slave girls upon
|
||
|
the dais shrieked and cowered away. And the thing jumped
|
||
|
at them and gnashed its teeth and then spat upon them from
|
||
|
frothing lips. God, but it was a horrid sight.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Finally, I shook the thing, hoping to recall it for a moment
|
||
|
to rationality.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Where is Dejah Thoris?" I cried again.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The awful creature in my grasp mumbled inarticulately
|
||
|
for a moment, then a sudden gleam of cunning shot into
|
||
|
those hideous, close-set eyes.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Dejah Thoris? Dejah Thoris?" and then that shrill, unearthly
|
||
|
laugh pierced our ears once more.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, Dejah Thoris--I know. And Thuvia, and Phaidor,
|
||
|
daughter of Matai Shang. They each love John Carter. Ha-ah!
|
||
|
but it is droll. Together for a year they will meditate within
|
||
|
the Temple of the Sun, but ere the year is quite gone there will
|
||
|
be no more food for them. Ho-oh! what divine entertainment,"
|
||
|
and she licked the froth from her cruel lips. "There
|
||
|
will be no more food--except each other. Ha-ah! Ha-ah!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The horror of the suggestion nearly paralysed me. To this
|
||
|
awful fate the creature within my power had condemned
|
||
|
my Princess. I trembled in the ferocity of my rage. As a
|
||
|
terrier shakes a rat I shook Issus, Goddess of Life Eternal.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Countermand your orders!" I cried. "Recall the condemned.
|
||
|
Haste, or you die!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is too late. Ha-ah! Ha-ah!" and then she commenced
|
||
|
her gibbering and shrieking again.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Almost of its own volition, my dagger flew up above that
|
||
|
putrid heart. But something stayed my hand, and I am now
|
||
|
glad that it did. It were a terrible thing to have struck down
|
||
|
a woman with one's own hand. But a fitter fate occurred to
|
||
|
me for this false deity.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"First Born," I cried, turning to those who stood within
|
||
|
the chamber, "you have seen to-day the impotency of Issus
|
||
|
--the gods are impotent. Issus is no god. She is a cruel
|
||
|
and wicked old woman, who has deceived and played upon
|
||
|
you for ages. Take her. John Carter, Prince of Helium, would
|
||
|
not contaminate his hand with her blood," and with that I
|
||
|
pushed the raving beast, whom a short half-hour before a
|
||
|
whole world had worshipped as divine, from the platform of
|
||
|
her throne into the waiting clutches of her betrayed and
|
||
|
vengeful people.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Spying Xodar among the officers of the red men, I called
|
||
|
him to lead me quickly to the Temple of the Sun, and,
|
||
|
without waiting to learn what fate the First Born would
|
||
|
wreak upon their goddess, I rushed from the chamber with
|
||
|
Xodar, Carthoris, Hor Vastus, Kantos Kan, and a score of
|
||
|
other red nobles.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The black led us rapidly through the inner chambers of
|
||
|
the temple, until we stood within the central court--a great
|
||
|
circular space paved with a transparent marble of exquisite
|
||
|
whiteness. Before us rose a golden temple wrought in the
|
||
|
most wondrous and fanciful designs, inlaid with diamond,
|
||
|
ruby, sapphire, turquoise, emerald, and the thousand nameless
|
||
|
gems of Mars, which far transcend in loveliness and purity
|
||
|
of ray the most priceless stones of Earth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This way," cried Xodar, leading us toward the entrance to
|
||
|
a tunnel which opened in the courtyard beside the temple.
|
||
|
Just as we were on the point of descending we heard a
|
||
|
deep-toned roar burst from the Temple of Issus, which we
|
||
|
had but just quitted, and then a red man, Djor Kantos,
|
||
|
padwar of the fifth utan, broke from a nearby gate,
|
||
|
crying to us to return.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The blacks have fired the temple," he cried. "In a thousand
|
||
|
places it is burning now. Haste to the outer gardens, or you are lost."
|
||
|
|
||
|
As he spoke we saw smoke pouring from a dozen windows
|
||
|
looking out upon the courtyard of the Temple of the Sun,
|
||
|
and far above the highest minaret of Issus hung an
|
||
|
ever-growing pall of smoke.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Go back! Go back!" I cried to those who had accompanied me.
|
||
|
"The way! Xodar; point the way and leave me.
|
||
|
I shall reach my Princess yet."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Follow me, John Carter," replied Xodar, and without
|
||
|
waiting for my reply he dashed down into the tunnel at our
|
||
|
feet. At his heels I ran down through a half-dozen tiers of
|
||
|
galleries, until at last he led me along a level floor at the
|
||
|
end of which I discerned a lighted chamber.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Massive bars blocked our further progress, but beyond I
|
||
|
saw her--my incomparable Princess, and with her were
|
||
|
Thuvia and Phaidor. When she saw me she rushed toward the
|
||
|
bars that separated us. Already the chamber had turned
|
||
|
upon its slow way so far that but a portion of the opening
|
||
|
in the temple wall was opposite the barred end of the corridor.
|
||
|
Slowly the interval was closing. In a short time there
|
||
|
would be but a tiny crack, and then even that would be
|
||
|
closed, and for a long Barsoomian year the chamber would
|
||
|
slowly revolve until once more for a brief day the aperture
|
||
|
in its wall would pass the corridor's end.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But in the meantime what horrible things would go on
|
||
|
within that chamber!
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Xodar!" I cried. "Can no power stop this awful revolving thing?
|
||
|
Is there none who holds the secret of these terrible bars?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"None, I fear, whom we could fetch in time, though I
|
||
|
shall go and make the attempt. Wait for me here."
|
||
|
|
||
|
After he had left I stood and talked with Dejah Thoris,
|
||
|
and she stretched her dear hand through those cruel bars
|
||
|
that I might hold it until the last moment.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Thuvia and Phaidor came close also, but when Thuvia saw
|
||
|
that we would be alone she withdrew to the further side of
|
||
|
the chamber. Not so the daughter of Matai Shang.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"John Carter," she said, "this be the last time that you shall
|
||
|
see any of us. Tell me that you love me, that I may die happy."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I love only the Princess of Helium," I replied quietly. "I am
|
||
|
sorry, Phaidor, but it is as I have told you from the beginning."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She bit her lip and turned away, but not before I saw
|
||
|
the black and ugly scowl she turned upon Dejah Thoris.
|
||
|
Thereafter she stood a little way apart, but not so far as I
|
||
|
should have desired, for I had many little confidences to
|
||
|
impart to my long-lost love.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For a few minutes we stood thus talking in low tones.
|
||
|
Ever smaller and smaller grew the opening. In a short time
|
||
|
now it would be too small even to permit the slender form
|
||
|
of my Princess to pass. Oh, why did not Xodar haste. Above
|
||
|
we could hear the faint echoes of a great tumult. It was the
|
||
|
multitude of black and red and green men fighting their way
|
||
|
through the fire from the burning Temple of Issus.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A draught from above brought the fumes of smoke to
|
||
|
our nostrils. As we stood waiting for Xodar the smoke
|
||
|
became thicker and thicker. Presently we heard shouting at
|
||
|
the far end of the corridor, and hurrying feet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come back, John Carter, come back!" cried a voice, "even
|
||
|
the pits are burning."
|
||
|
|
||
|
In a moment a dozen men broke through the now blinding
|
||
|
smoke to my side. There was Carthoris, and Kantos Kan,
|
||
|
and Hor Vastus, and Xodar, with a few more who had
|
||
|
followed me to the temple court.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There is no hope, John Carter," cried Xodar. "The keeper
|
||
|
of the keys is dead and his keys are not upon his carcass.
|
||
|
Our only hope is to quench this conflagration and trust to
|
||
|
fate that a year will find your Princess alive and well. I
|
||
|
have brought sufficient food to last them. When this crack
|
||
|
closes no smoke can reach them, and if we hasten to extinguish
|
||
|
the flames I believe they will be safe."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Go, then, yourself and take these others with you," I replied.
|
||
|
"I shall remain here beside my Princess until a merciful
|
||
|
death releases me from my anguish. I care not to live."
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I spoke Xodar had been tossing a great number of
|
||
|
tiny cans within the prison cell. The remaining crack was
|
||
|
not over an inch in width a moment later. Dejah Thoris
|
||
|
stood as close to it as she could, whispering words of hope
|
||
|
and courage to me, and urging me to save myself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Suddenly beyond her I saw the beautiful face of Phaidor
|
||
|
contorted into an expression of malign hatred. As my eyes
|
||
|
met hers she spoke.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Think not, John Carter, that you may so lightly cast aside
|
||
|
the love of Phaidor, daughter of Matai Shang. Nor ever hope
|
||
|
to hold thy Dejah Thoris in thy arms again. Wait you the
|
||
|
long, long year; but know that when the waiting is over it
|
||
|
shall be Phaidor's arms which shall welcome you--not those
|
||
|
of the Princess of Helium. Behold, she dies!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
And as she finished speaking I saw her raise a dagger on high,
|
||
|
and then I saw another figure. It was Thuvia's. As the
|
||
|
dagger fell toward the unprotected breast of my love, Thuvia
|
||
|
was almost between them. A blinding gust of smoke
|
||
|
blotted out the tragedy within that fearsome cell--a shriek
|
||
|
rang out, a single shriek, as the dagger fell.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The smoke cleared away, but we stood gazing upon a
|
||
|
blank wall. The last crevice had closed, and for a long
|
||
|
year that hideous chamber would retain its secret from the
|
||
|
eyes of men.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They urged me to leave.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In a moment it will be too late," cried Xodar. "There is,
|
||
|
in fact, but a bare chance that we can come through to the
|
||
|
outer garden alive even now. I have ordered the pumps
|
||
|
started, and in five minutes the pits will be flooded. If we
|
||
|
would not drown like rats in a trap we must hasten above
|
||
|
and make a dash for safety through the burning temple."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Go," I urged them. "Let me die here beside my
|
||
|
Princess--there is no hope or happiness elsewhere for me.
|
||
|
When they carry her dear body from that terrible place a
|
||
|
year hence let them find the body of her lord awaiting her."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Of what happened after that I have only a confused
|
||
|
recollection. It seems as though I struggled with many men,
|
||
|
and then that I was picked bodily from the ground and
|
||
|
borne away. I do not know. I have never asked, nor has
|
||
|
any other who was there that day intruded on my sorrow
|
||
|
or recalled to my mind the occurrences which they know
|
||
|
could but at best reopen the terrible wound within my heart.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Ah! If I could but know one thing, what a burden of
|
||
|
suspense would be lifted from my shoulders! But whether the
|
||
|
assassin's dagger reached one fair bosom or another, only
|
||
|
time will divulge.
|
||
|
|
||
|
END.
|
||
|
.
|